Selected quad for the lemma: doctrine_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
doctrine_n cause_v dare_v great_a 18 3 2.0863 3 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A49603 The history of the Eucharist divided into three parts : the first treating of the form of celebration : the second of the doctrine : the third of worship in the sacrament / written originally in French by monsieur L'Arroque ... done into English by J.W.; Histoire de l'Eucharistie. English Larroque, Matthieu de, 1619-1684.; Walker, Joseph. 1684 (1684) Wing L454; ESTC R30489 587,431 602

There are 30 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

time_n the_o utter_a ruin_n of_o it_o there_o be_v no_o likelihood_n that_o be_v so_o powerful_o oppose_v as_o it_o be_v it_o shall_v ever_o do_v any_o harm_n whereas_o shall_v they_o have_v set_v about_o censure_v and_o condemn_v it_o public_o it_o may_v be_v fear_v lest_o it_o may_v recover_v strength_n because_o it_o be_v often_o see_v that_o person_n grow_v stubborn_a against_o reproof_n and_o more_o earnest_o desire_v the_o thing_n that_o be_v forbid_v use_v their_o utmost_a skill_n and_o power_n to_o obtain_v the_o enjoyment_n these_o as_o be_v suppose_v be_v the_o reason_n and_o motive_n of_o the_o conduct_n of_o these_o two_o pope_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o opinion_n of_o paschas_fw-la in_o not_o condemn_v he_o public_o although_o they_o do_v not_o also_o approve_v of_o he_o but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o of_o the_o other_o opinion_n for_o they_o plain_o do_v see_v that_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o enemy_n of_o paschas_fw-la be_v a_o belief_n public_o receive_v by_o all_o the_o world_n in_o france_n in_o germany_n in_o england_n and_o elsewhere_o and_o moreover_o approve_v by_o the_o most_o learned_a man_n of_o the_o age_n public_o vindicate_v by_o write_n support_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o most_o eminent_a prince_n and_o prelate_n they_o can_v not_o then_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o danger_n the_o church_n be_v in_o if_o this_o belief_n be_v not_o catholic_n nor_o this_o doctrine_n orthodox_n and_o not_o be_v ignorant_a of_o it_o it_o have_v be_v charity_n and_o the_o duty_n also_o of_o nicholas_n and_o adrian_n to_o have_v take_v notice_n of_o it_o and_o to_o have_v redress_v it_o for_o the_o case_n be_v not_o of_o two_o or_o three_o friar_n which_o paschas_fw-la have_v draw_v unto_o his_o opinion_n but_o of_o the_o great_a part_n of_o the_o west_n which_o be_v overspread_v with_o the_o opinion_n of_o his_o adversary_n have_v it_o be_v a_o heretical_a and_o heterodox_n opinion_n and_o a_o doctrine_n contrary_n unto_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o church_n it_o can_v be_v say_v but_o these_o pope_n have_v credit_n and_o power_n enough_o to_o have_v oppose_v themselves_o for_o beside_o that_o every_o body_n know_v the_o pope_n have_v already_o acquire_v great_a power_n over_o the_o western_a church_n wherein_o they_o easy_o cause_v their_o constitution_n to_o be_v receive_v the_o bishop_n not_o dare_v much_o to_o oppose_v the_o execution_n of_o their_o decree_n although_o they_o find_v they_o not_o always_o agreeable_a unto_o the_o ancient_a canon_n beside_o this_o i_o say_v who_o know_v not_o but_o they_o may_v at_o least_o have_v protest_v against_o so_o pernicious_a a_o opinion_n have_v oppose_v what_o they_o can_v unto_o its_o settlement_n and_o earnest_o exhort_v the_o prelate_n to_o stop_v the_o course_n and_o progress_n of_o so_o dangerous_a a_o doctrine_n to_o have_v use_v anathema_n and_o excommunication_n against_o the_o promoter_n of_o it_o thereby_o to_o have_v discourage_v other_o yet_o nevertheless_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a they_o do_v no_o such_o thing_n be_v it_o not_o then_o a_o manifest_a sign_n that_o they_o themselves_o be_v of_o this_o belief_n and_o that_o they_o acknowledge_v that_o this_o doctrine_n be_v the_o very_a same_o whereof_o the_o church_n have_v ever_o be_v in_o peaceable_a possession_n until_o paschas_fw-la come_v to_o disturb_v she_o in_o the_o enjoyment_n of_o her_o paternal_a inheritance_n these_o be_v the_o inference_n make_v by_o protestant_n from_o the_o silence_n of_o these_o two_o pope_n they_o say_v the_o thing_n will_v appear_v yet_o plain_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o temper_n of_o nicholas_n the_o first_o and_o the_o occasion_n he_o have_v as_o also_o adrian_n the_o second_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o adversary_n of_o paschas_fw-la nicholas_n the_o first_o be_v a_o learned_a man_n for_o that_o age_n a_o dare_a and_o undertake_v man_n who_o very_o much_o advance_v the_o dignity_n of_o his_o see_n unto_o the_o prejudice_n of_o other_o church_n france_n feel_v the_o effect_n of_o his_o policy_n and_o power_n in_o that_o he_o obtain_v the_o right_n of_o assemble_v council_n which_o the_o king_n be_v wont_a to_o do_v before_o that_o he_o give_v a_o very_a great_a assault_n unto_o the_o little_a power_n that_o its_o prelate_n have_v remain_v and_o that_o he_o begin_v to_o make_v they_o receive_v the_o decretal_n of_o the_o first_o pope_n which_o have_v be_v forge_v by_o some_o impostor_n about_o the_o time_n of_o charlemagne_n it_o be_v only_o necessary_a to_o read_v what_o the_o late_a mounseur_fw-fr de_fw-fr marca_n have_v say_v in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o liberty_n of_o the_o gallican_n church_n 23._o marca_n de_fw-fr concord_n l._n 3._o c._n 5_o 6._o &_o l._n 6._o c._n 28._o &_o l._n 7._o c._n 23._o to_o see_v what_o kind_n of_o a_o person_n nicholas_n the_o first_o be_v and_o what_o attempt_v he_o make_v against_o the_o prelate_n of_o france_n and_o their_o synod_n nevertheless_o i_o do_v not_o find_v that_o ever_o he_o touch_v the_o point_n of_o the_o eucharist_n although_o he_o have_v occasion_n either_o to_o have_v reprove_v their_o shameful_a compliance_n or_o their_o error_n for_o example_n in_o the_o difference_n he_o have_v with_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n first_o upon_o account_n of_o walfad_n and_o some_o other_o clerk_n which_o have_v be_v establish_v by_o ebbo_n archbishop_n of_o rheims_n after_o his_o deposition_n and_o re-establishment_n which_o be_v no_o way_n canonical_a and_o who_o ordination_n be_v esteem_v void_a in_o a_o council_n of_o soissons_fw-fr in_o the_o year_n 853._o and_o second_o upon_o the_o subject_a of_o rothard_n bishop_n of_o soissons_fw-fr who_o have_v be_v depose_v by_o the_o french_a prelate_n nicholas_n inform_v himself_o of_o both_o these_o matter_n and_o force_v our_o bishop_n to_o comply_v with_o his_o desire_n even_o to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o their_o liberty_n and_o of_o their_o remain_a authority_n as_o those_o know_v very_o well_o that_o have_v any_o knowledge_n of_o the_o history_n of_o those_o time_n without_o recite_v here_o the_o particularity_n of_o it_o it_o need_v only_o be_v say_v that_o if_o the_o belief_n of_o nicholas_n upon_o the_o point_n of_o the_o sacrament_n have_v be_v different_a from_o that_o of_o the_o adversary_n of_o paschas_fw-la it_o be_v likely_a that_o these_o two_o conjuncture_n of_o matter_n have_v offer_v he_o two_o fair_a occasion_n of_o reproach_v they_o that_o as_o they_o make_v no_o difficulty_n of_o break_v the_o canon_n in_o depose_v of_o clerk_n and_o bishop_n for_o they_o think_v so_o otherwise_o he_o can_v have_v have_v no_o pretext_n for_o re-establish_a of_o they_o so_o also_o they_o fear_v not_o violate_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n in_o so_o important_a a_o point_n as_o be_v that_o of_o the_o sacrament_n either_o in_o embrace_v themselves_o a_o new_a belief_n or_o in_o suffer_v it_o to_o get_v ground_n to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o the_o ancient_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n which_o paschas_fw-la have_v clear_o explain_v be_v it_o likely_a that_o pope_n nicholas_n who_o be_v a_o very_a learned_a politic_a and_o prudent_a man_n shall_v have_v forget_v to_o have_v make_v they_o this_o reproach_n in_o the_o difference_n he_o have_v with_o they_o thereby_o to_o have_v load_v they_o with_o shame_n and_o with_o the_o more_o plausible_a show_n of_o justice_n to_o have_v deprive_v they_o of_o their_o right_n and_o privilege_n in_o show_v unto_o all_o the_o world_n that_o they_o have_v make_v themselves_o unworthy_a of_o they_o because_o they_o see_v the_o ancient_a faith_n of_o christian_n ruin_v without_o make_v any_o opposition_n by_o the_o establish_n of_o a_o new_a doctrine_n which_o insinuate_v itself_o into_o the_o mind_n of_o all_o man_n and_o which_o be_v already_o general_o receive_v in_o all_o place_n it_o can_v be_v believe_v nicholas_n will_v have_v be_v silent_a in_o these_o occasion_n if_o the_o opinion_n of_o paschas_fw-la have_v be_v the_o first_o belief_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o of_o his_o adversary_n a_o new_a opinion_n which_o they_o endeavour_v to_o settle_v in_o the_o place_n of_o the_o old_a moreover_o we_o have_v make_v appear_v in_o the_o precedent_a chapter_n that_o heribold_n bishop_n of_o auxerr_n be_v principal_a chaplain_n unto_o charles_n the_o bald_a that_o he_o can_v not_o be_v so_o without_o the_o consent_n not_o only_o of_o the_o synod_n but_o also_o of_o the_o pope_n that_o be_v either_o of_o nicholas_n the_o first_o or_o of_o adrian_n the_o second_o for_o in_o all_o likelihood_n it_o must_v have_v be_v under_o one_o or_o the_o other_o of_o they_o and_o in_o fine_a that_o he_o have_v a_o opinion_n contrary_a unto_o paschas_fw-la upon_o the_o subject_a of_o the_o eucharist_n and_o agreeable_a unto_o that_o of_o the_o protestant_n be_v it_o probable_a say_v some_o that_o nicholas_n or_o adrian_n will_v have_v suffer_v charles_n
in_o the_o main_a so_o also_o i_o think_v fit_a to_o express_v my_o gratitude_n unto_o the_o great_a family_n of_o the_o windhams_n in_o particular_a a_o family_n know_v to_o be_v true_o noble_a and_o great_a in_o the_o number_n of_o its_o flourish_a branch_n as_o well_o as_o in_o riches_n honour_n and_o approve_a loyalty_n unto_o their_o king_n and_o country_n the_o true_a happiness_n and_o last_a prosperity_n whereof_o shall_v ever_o be_v sincere_o wish_v and_o desire_v by_o honour_a sir_n your_o most_o obedient_a humble_a servant_n jos_n walker_n the_o author_n preface_n translate_v from_o the_o french_z the_o controversy_n about_o religion_n be_v a_o kind_n of_o war_n or_o if_o you_o will_v a_o sort_n of_o lawsuit_n wherein_o both_o party_n plead_v their_o cause_n with_o some_o heat_n it_o seem_v to_o i_o very_o difficult_a to_o write_v and_o not_o let_v fall_v some_o word_n that_o may_v favour_v the_o interest_n of_o that_o side_n for_o which_o we_o be_v concern_v because_o the_o flesh_n corrupt_v the_o act_n of_o the_o understanding_n and_o the_o old_a man_n never_o fail_v to_o vitiate_v the_o purity_n of_o the_o thought_n of_o the_o new_a i_o do_v not_o here_o speak_v of_o those_o angry_a writer_n who_o in_o all_o their_o work_n do_v show_v a_o unlimited_a passion_n for_o the_o cause_n which_o they_o defend_v and_o meditate_v nothing_o but_o disparage_v their_o adversary_n to_o make_v their_o own_o party_n triumph_v by_o the_o calumny_n which_o they_o cast_v upon_o the_o other_o i_o speak_v of_o mild_a and_o peaceable_a spirit_n who_o write_v with_o moderation_n who_o nevertheless_o do_v it_o not_o always_o so_o successful_o but_o they_o let_v drop_v some_o thing_n which_o all_o do_v not_o approve_v of_o because_o their_o ever_o remain_v frailty_n in_o man_n and_o the_o innocency_n of_o the_o second_o adam_n have_v not_o a_o complete_a victory_n over_o the_o first_o what_o i_o say_v be_v particular_o verify_v in_o examine_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o the_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n for_o both_o the_o roman_a catholic_n and_o the_o protestant_n pretend_v that_o it_o be_v favourable_a to_o their_o cause_n each_o allege_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a father_n to_o establish_v their_o belief_n and_o religion_n this_o consideration_n make_v i_o think_v that_o the_o sure_a way_n and_o most_o edify_a mean_n for_o christian_n will_v be_v plain_o to_o produce_v what_o have_v be_v from_o time_n to_o time_n receive_v and_o believe_v in_o the_o church_n upon_o the_o point_n in_o controversy_n and_o historical_o without_o dispute_n to_o represent_v the_o sentiment_n of_o our_o ancestor_n upon_o all_o the_o article_n which_o be_v to_o be_v examine_v this_o be_v what_o i_o have_v endeavour_v to_o do_v upon_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o eucharist_n which_o be_v and_o will_v be_v always_o if_o god_n prevent_v it_o not_o by_o his_o grace_n a_o stone_n of_o stumble_v and_o a_o mean_n which_o the_o devil_n will_v never_o fail_v to_o use_v to_o keep_v up_o among_o christian_n that_o unhappy_a strife_n wherewith_o they_o be_v so_o please_v but_o which_o ought_v to_o draw_v tear_n of_o blood_n from_o those_o good_a soul_n that_o be_v sensible_o touch_v for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o that_o without_o cease_v by_o their_o prayer_n desire_v that_o he_o will_v give_v unto_o all_o the_o grace_n to_o keep_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o spirit_n in_o the_o bond_n of_o peace_n the_o better_a to_o succeed_v in_o my_o design_n and_o to_o represent_v the_o sacrament_n at_o large_a i_o have_v divide_v my_o work_n into_o three_o part_n in_o the_o first_o i_o examine_v the_o outward_a form_n of_o celebration_n i_o prove_v that_o bread_n and_o wine_n have_v always_o be_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n among_o christian_n i_o hint_n at_o the_o mixture_n of_o water_n with_o the_o wine_n in_o the_o holy_a cup_n and_o i_o endeavour_v to_o discover_v the_o original_a as_o well_o as_o the_o mystery_n which_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n since_o s._n cyprian_n have_v seek_v for_o in_o this_o mixture_n i_o mention_v sundry_a sect_n of_o heretic_n whereof_o some_o have_v change_v the_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n other_o have_v corrupt_v the_o celebration_n and_o last_o other_o have_v quite_o reject_v it_o not_o suffer_v that_o it_o shall_v be_v celebrate_v at_o all_o i_o omit_v not_o what_o s._n ignatius_n say_v of_o certain_a heretic_n who_o condemn_v the_o celebration_n nor_o the_o heresy_n of_o one_o call_v tanchelin_n who_o also_o deny_v it_o but_o through_o another_o principle_n i_o make_v some_o mention_n of_o the_o slander_n which_o the_o jew_n and_o other_o cast_v upon_o christian_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o i_o treat_v of_o the_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n about_o the_o use_n of_o levened_a and_o unleven_v bread_n then_o i_o consider_v whence_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v take_v what_o be_v the_o fashion_n of_o the_o bread_n with_o the_o innovation_n and_o change_n which_o have_v thereupon_o happen_v from_o thence_o i_o proceed_v to_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o place_n of_o consecration_n of_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o chalice_n and_o patins_z that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o vessel_n which_o be_v use_v in_o this_o holy_a action_n this_o consideration_n be_v follow_v with_o a_o inquiry_n of_o the_o language_n wherein_o consecration_n be_v make_v and_o wherein_o all_o the_o service_n be_v general_o perform_v and_o from_o this_o inquiry_n i_o proceed_v to_o the_o examination_n of_o ceremony_n and_o of_o the_o form_n of_o consecration_n i_o mean_v the_o word_n of_o consecration_n to_o know_v whether_o the_o ancient_a church_n do_v consecrate_v by_o prayer_n blessing_n and_o give_v of_o thanks_o or_o by_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n as_o be_v now_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n then_o i_o treat_v of_o the_o oblation_n or_o the_o form_n of_o the_o sacrifice_n and_o i_o show_v the_o reason_n and_o motive_n which_o oblige_v the_o holy_a father_n to_o give_v to_o the_o eucharist_n the_o name_n of_o oblation_n and_o sacrifice_n i_o annex_v unto_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o oblation_n that_o of_o the_o elevation_n and_o of_o the_o fraction_n and_o i_o show_v at_o what_o time_n the_o latin_n begin_v to_o lift_v up_o the_o host_n to_o warn_v the_o people_n to_o adore_v it_o moreover_o i_o examine_v the_o distribution_n and_o communion_n and_o in_o the_o first_o place_n the_o time_n the_o place_n and_o the_o posture_n of_o the_o communicant_a the_o person_n who_o distribute_v those_o who_o communicate_v with_o the_o word_n of_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o and_o then_o of_o the_o thing_n distribute_v treat_v at_o large_a the_o question_n of_o the_o communion_n under_o both_o kind_n i_o also_o show_v that_o for_o several_a age_n communicant_n receive_v the_o eucharist_n with_o their_o hand_n that_o they_o be_v permit_v to_o carry_v it_o unto_o their_o house_n and_o to_o carry_v it_o along_o with_o they_o in_o their_o journey_n and_o travel_n and_o that_o the_o ancient_a christian_n be_v so_o little_a scrupulous_a in_o this_o matter_n that_o sometime_o they_o send_v the_o sacrament_n unto_o the_o sick_a by_o lay_v person_n man_n woman_n acolytes_n and_o young_a boy_n and_o not_o only_o so_o but_o they_o make_v plaster_n of_o it_o they_o bury_v it_o with_o the_o dead_a in_o some_o church_n they_o burn_v the_o remainder_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o in_o other_o they_o cause_v it_o to_o be_v eat_v by_o little_a infant_n sometime_o they_o take_v consecrate_v wine_n and_o mix_v it_o with_o ink_n than_o they_o dip_v their_o pen_n in_o these_o mix_a liquor_n the_o more_o to_o confirm_v the_o act_n they_o intend_v to_o sign_n in_o the_o second_o part_n i_o describe_v the_o history_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n upon_o this_o weighty_a article_n begin_v with_o the_o reflection_n they_o have_v make_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o institution_n and_o upon_o the_o interpretation_n they_o have_v give_v of_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o after_o these_o reflection_n i_o represent_v a_o great_a number_n of_o testimony_n wherein_o they_o call_v the_o eucharist_n bread_n and_o wine_n in_o the_o very_a act_n of_o communicate_v they_o affirm_v it_o be_v bread_n which_o be_v break_v that_o it_o be_v corn_n wheat_n the_o fruit_n of_o the_o vine_n fruit_n of_o the_o earth_n and_o like_a term_n they_o positive_o say_v that_o it_o be_v bread_n and_o wine_n bread_n wherewith_o our_o body_n be_v nourish_v the_o matter_n whereof_o pass_v through_o the_o natural_a accident_n of_o our_o common_a food_n bread_n which_o be_v consume_v in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n they_o affirm_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o cup_n which_o we_o receive_v at_o the_o lord_n table_n be_v thing_n
from_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o xi_o century_n all_o the_o doctor_n have_v err_v in_o the_o point_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n except_o berengarius_fw-la and_o himself_n and_o their_o follower_n it_o must_v then_o be_v grant_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o john_n wickliff_n upon_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v the_o same_o with_o that_o of_o berengarius_fw-la and_o by_o consequence_n direct_o contrary_a unto_o that_o of_o the_o latin_a church_n a_o doctrine_n which_o according_a to_o the_o testimony_n of_o walsingham_n he_o teach_v public_o in_o his_o lecture_n in_o his_o sermon_n and_o in_o his_o write_n maintain_v as_o be_v elsewhere_o show_v by_o this_o english_a historian_n that_o after_o the_o consecration_n make_v by_o the_o priest_n in_o the_o mass_n 1282._o in_o richard_n h._n &_o add_v a_o 1282._o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n do_v therein_o remain_v as_o they_o be_v before_o pope_n gregory_n the_o ix_o have_v indeed_o condemn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o wickliff_n as_o heretical_a in_o the_o year_n 1377._o and_o have_v certify_v so_o much_o by_o letter_n unto_o the_o university_n of_o oxford_n unto_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n the_o bishop_n of_o london_n and_o unto_o king_n edward_n himself_o command_v they_o to_o order_v matter_n so_o ii_o in_o richardo_n ii_o that_o wickliff_n shall_v be_v apprehend_v and_o put_v into_o prison_n but_o walsingham_n who_o every_o where_o vomit_n thunder_v and_o lightning_n against_o he_o testify_v that_o the_o bull_n of_o gregory_n have_v no_o effect_n the_o university_n have_v consult_v whether_o it_o shall_v receive_v these_o bull_n honourable_o or_o reject_v they_o with_o scorn_n the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n and_o the_o bishop_n of_o london_n carry_v themselves_o very_o negligent_o and_o cold_o either_o of_o their_o own_o inclination_n or_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o people_n which_o favour_v he_o or_o it_o may_v be_v for_o both_o together_o as_o for_o the_o king_n we_o do_v not_o find_v that_o the_o pope_n letter_n make_v any_o impression_n upon_o his_o spirit_n v._n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la mart._n v._n on_o the_o contrary_a this_o historian_n inform_v we_o that_o the_o lord_n and_o prince_n of_o the_o kingdom_n do_v favour_n wickliff_n which_o thomas_n waldensis_n interpret_v of_o the_o king_n himself_o and_o of_o his_o son_n of_o the_o duke_n of_o lancaster_n and_o several_a other_o great_a lord_n of_o the_o kingdom_n therefore_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v wonder_v at_o if_o walsingham_n say_v that_o the_o prince_n and_o great_a lord_n protect_v he_o the_o which_o he_o repeat_v over_o again_o in_o the_o life_n of_o edward_n the_o three_o and_o he_o observe_v in_o that_o of_o richard_n the_o second_o upon_o the_o year_n 1381._o that_o he_o seduce_v great_a number_n throughout_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n and_o that_o he_o have_v agent_n which_o he_o employ_v therein_o he_o neglect_v no_o opportunity_n himself_o on_o his_o own_o part_n among_o those_o which_o side_v with_o he_o 1381_o in_o richardo_n h._n ad_fw-la a_o 1381_o he_o make_v mention_n of_o one_o william_n which_o preach_v at_o leicester_n on_o palm-sunday_n that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n be_v true_a bread_n after_o consecration_n and_o as_o the_o bishop_n of_o lincoln_n dispose_v himself_o to_o punish_v he_o in_o deprive_v he_o of_o the_o liberty_n of_o preach_v the_o people_n appear_v in_o his_o behalf_n so_o affright_v the_o bishop_n that_o he_o dare_v proceed_v no_o far_o against_o he_o after_o which_o he_o mention_n several_a other_o learned_a man_n that_o profess_v the_o same_o faith_n and_o which_o preach_v it_o bold_o and_o public_o not_o only_o in_o the_o city_n and_o village_n but_o also_o at_o the_o university_n of_o oxford_n on_o the_o eve_n of_o holiday_n particular_o nicholas_z hertford_n chancellor_n of_o the_o university_n ibid._n ibid._n and_o a_o certain_a prebend_n of_o leicester_n all_o these_o say_v he_o and_z several_z other_o their_o adherent_n publish_v their_o sin_n like_o sodom_n and_o do_v not_o hide_v it_o and_o not_o be_v content_a to_o have_v evil_a opinion_n touch_v the_o catholic_n faith_n and_o other_o point_n wherein_o they_o err_v they_o draw_v the_o people_n into_o the_o precipice_n of_o their_o error_n by_o public_a sermon_n william_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n see_v that_o infinite_a number_n of_o people_n depart_v daily_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n assemble_v his_o suffragan_n bishop_n and_o some_o other_o assistant_n which_o as_o walsingham_n say_v have_v not_o follow_v after_o baal_n with_o several_a professor_n of_o divinity_n and_o in_o this_o assembly_n cause_v to_o be_v condemn_v twenty_o proposition_n of_o wickliff_n who_o notwithstanding_o this_o condemnation_n do_v not_o forbear_v teach_v and_o write_v as_o before_o as_o be_v testify_v by_o thomas_n waldensis_n 12._o prologue_n t._n 2._o doctrine_n 12._o but_o it_o may_v not_o be_v pass_v over_o in_o silence_n that_o among_o these_o proposition_n of_o wickliff_n which_o be_v condemn_v the_o first_o of_o which_o deny_v transubstantion_n the_o seven_o import_v that_o god_n ought_v to_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o devil_n a_o most_o horrible_a proposition_n which_o i_o think_v can_v not_o proceed_v out_o of_o the_o mouth_n of_o any_o man_n that_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o a_o christian_a therefore_o it_o be_v but_o charity_n not_o too_o easy_o to_o give_v credit_n to_o these_o kind_n of_o accusation_n without_o have_v convince_a proof_n of_o it_o of_o all_o wickliff_n work_n 3._o vid._n l._n 2._o c._n 13._o &_o l._n 4._o c._n 3._o there_o be_v but_o one_o print_v that_o i_o know_v of_o entitle_v trialogus_fw-la now_o in_o this_o treatise_n there_o be_v contain_v several_a thing_n which_o absolute_o destory_n this_o devilish_a proposition_n moreover_o if_o wickliff_n present_v unto_o the_o english_a nobility_n assemble_v in_o parliament_n at_o london_n the_o proposition_n now_o speak_v of_o as_o the_o friar_n walsingham_n do_v testify_v be_v it_o probable_a that_o have_v a_o design_n to_o invite_v they_o to_o embrace_v his_o opinion_n as_o the_o same_o historian_n do_v intimate_v he_o will_v have_v propose_v such_o a_o thesis_n which_o have_v be_v sufficient_a to_o have_v exasperate_v they_o against_o he_o and_o rather_o have_v make_v they_o his_o enemy_n than_o his_o protector_n neither_o do_v i_o find_v that_o widdeford_n who_o report_v and_o oppose_v all_o wickliff_n article_n which_o thomas_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n the_o pope_n legate_n condemn_v four_o year_n after_o in_o a_o synod_n at_o london_n i_o say_v i_o can_v find_v that_o he_o make_v any_o mention_n of_o this_o blasphemous_a proposition_n that_o god_n shall_v obey_v the_o devil_n let_v the_o reader_n give_v his_o judgement_n thereupon_o as_o for_o my_o part_n i_o will_v prosecute_v the_o course_n of_o my_o history_n in_o say_v that_o wickliff_n depart_v this_o life_n in_o the_o year_n 1385._o in_o the_o parish_n of_o lutleworth_n whereof_o he_o be_v curate_n after_o have_v compose_v and_o write_v several_a book_n and_o treatise_n for_o aeneas_n silvius_n who_o be_v afterward_o pope_n under_o the_o name_n of_o pius_n the_o second_o 35._o cap._n 35._o write_v in_o his_o history_n of_o bohemia_n that_o it_o be_v suppose_v they_o be_v above_o two_o hundred_o volume_n the_o friar_n walsingham_n 1387._o 1_o ad_fw-la a_o 1387._o who_o be_v his_o swear_a enemy_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o thesis_n which_o he_o publish_v against_o the_o friar_n describe_v his_o death_n in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o sufficient_o express_v his_o passion_n and_o resentment_n 1385._o 2_o in_o ricard_n ii_o ad_fw-la a_o 1385._o ground_v his_o relation_n upon_o hear-say_n as_o it_o be_v report_v nevertheless_o he_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o say_v that_o he_o die_v distract_v and_o that_o he_o be_v damn_v 35._o in_o hist_o bohem._n c._n 35._o quite_o contrary_a unto_o john_n hus_n who_o by_o the_o relation_n of_o aeneas_n silvius_n that_o he_o have_v render_v himself_o famous_a by_o the_o reputation_n he_o have_v acquire_v by_o a_o holy_a and_o pious_a life_n for_o he_o often_o say_v in_o his_o sermon_n ibid._n ibid._n that_o he_o desire_v to_o go_v after_o his_o death_n unto_o the_o same_o place_n where_o the_o soul_n of_o wickliff_n be_v go_v make_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o he_o be_v a_o good_a and_o holy_a man_n and_o worthy_a of_o heaven_n the_o doctrine_n of_o wickliff_n do_v not_o expire_v with_o his_o person_n for_o nicholas_n herreford_n doctor_n in_o divinity_n defend_v those_o which_o be_v his_o follower_n and_o which_o profess_v the_o doctrine_n which_o he_o have_v teach_v as_o 1387._o 1_o in_o ricard_n ii_o ad_fw-la a_o 1387._o walsingham_n do_v write_v 1395._o 2_o ad_fw-la a_o 1389._o in_o hypodigm_n neust_fw-fr &_o add_v a_o 1395._o which_o he_o represent_v unto_o we_o to_o have_v be_v in_o very_o great_a number_n under_o the_o name_n of_o lollard_n in_o all_o that_o
inanimate_a that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n remain_v after_o consecration_n and_o because_o one_o be_v find_v among_o they_o that_o much_o vary_v from_o this_o language_n i_o represent_v unto_o the_o reader_n what_o some_o have_v say_v to_o reconcile_v this_o author_n with_o other_o who_o have_v express_v themselves_o otherwise_o than_o he_o have_v do_v then_o reassuming_a the_o thread_n of_o my_o history_n i_o make_v appear_v that_o these_o same_o doctor_n have_v believe_v that_o participate_v of_o the_o eucharist_n break_v the_o fast_o and_o that_o they_o have_v speak_v of_o what_o be_v receive_v in_o the_o communion_n as_o of_o a_o thing_n whereof_o one_o receive_v a_o little_a a_o morsel_n a_o piece_n a_o small_a portion_n and_o have_v see_v what_o they_o believe_v and_o what_o they_o say_v of_o the_o thing_n which_o we_o receive_v in_o the_o eucharist_n i_o inquire_v what_o they_o teach_v of_o the_o use_n the_o office_n and_o employ_v of_o the_o sacred_a symbol_n and_o they_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v the_o sacrament_n the_o sign_n the_o figure_n the_o type_n the_o antitype_n the_o symbol_n the_o image_n the_o similitude_n and_o the_o resemblance_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o better_a to_o instruct_v we_o in_o the_o nature_n and_o force_n of_o these_o expression_n they_o will_v have_v we_o make_v these_o two_o observation_n first_o that_o when_o they_o speak_v of_o the_o eucharist_n as_o of_o a_o sign_n a_o figure_n a_o image_n it_o be_v in_o opposition_n to_o the_o reality_n which_o they_o consider_v as_o absent_v the_o other_o be_v that_o they_o constant_o hold_v that_o the_o image_n and_o the_o figure_n can_v be_v that_o whereof_o they_o be_v the_o image_n and_o figure_n and_o indeed_o not_o to_o leave_v their_o doctrine_n expose_v unto_o the_o stroke_n of_o calumny_n they_o declare_v that_o if_o the_o eucharist_n be_v a_o figure_n and_o a_o image_n it_o be_v not_o a_o bare_a figure_n nor_o a_o image_n without_o operation_n but_o a_o figure_n a_o image_n and_o a_o sacrament_n replenish_v with_o all_o the_o virtue_n and_o all_o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n clothe_v if_o it_o may_v be_v so_o say_v with_o the_o majesty_n of_o his_o person_n and_o accompany_v in_o the_o lawful_a celebration_n with_o all_o the_o fruit_n and_o with_o all_o the_o benefit_n of_o his_o death_n and_o suffering_n but_o because_o the_o same_o father_n who_o affirm_v that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v bread_n and_o wine_n and_o who_o say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o sign_n the_o symbol_n the_o figure_n and_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n do_v say_v also_o that_o it_o be_v his_o body_n and_o his_o blood_n that_o it_o pass_v and_o be_v turn_v into_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n i_o have_v not_o omit_v to_o report_v the_o explication_n which_o they_o give_v we_o thereupon_o and_o to_o show_v which_o of_o those_o sort_n of_o expression_n they_o have_v limit_v for_o by_o this_o mean_v it_o be_v easy_a to_o comprehend_v their_o word_n and_o intention_n have_v end_v the_o examination_n of_o their_o doctrine_n i_o have_v apply_v myself_o unto_o the_o search_n and_o inquiry_n of_o its_o consequence_n to_o know_v if_o they_o believe_v the_o eat_n of_o the_o flesh_n of_o jesus_n christ_n with_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o body_n the_o eat_n of_o the_o same_o flesh_n by_o the_o wicked_a as_o well_o as_o by_o the_o righteous_a and_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o lord_n upon_o earth_n as_o to_o his_o humanity_n and_o how_o they_o understand_v the_o follow_a maxim_n whether_o a_o body_n can_v be_v in_o several_a place_n at_o the_o same_o time_n whether_o it_o can_v subsist_v invisible_o after_o the_o manner_n of_o a_o spirit_n without_o occupy_v any_o space_n whether_o what_o have_v be_v do_v long_o since_o can_v still_o be_v do_v every_o day_n whether_o the_o cause_n can_v be_v late_a than_o the_o effect_n whether_o that_o which_o contain_v ought_v not_o to_o be_v great_a than_o that_o which_o be_v contain_v whether_o accident_n can_v exist_v without_o their_o subject_n whether_o the_o sense_n may_v be_v deceive_v in_o the_o report_n they_o make_v of_o sensible_a object_n when_o there_o be_v no_o defect_n in_o the_o organ_n or_o in_o the_o medium_n or_o situation_n of_o the_o object_n whether_o a_o body_n ought_v to_o be_v visible_a and_o palpable_a and_o whether_o it_o ought_v to_o have_v its_o part_n so_o distinguish_v the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o that_o each_o part_n ought_v to_o answer_v the_o respective_a part_n of_o place_n whether_o there_o may_v be_v penetration_n of_o dimension_n whether_o one_o may_v dwell_v in_o himself_o whether_o a_o body_n may_v be_v all_o entire_o in_o one_o of_o its_o part_n and_o whether_o whatsoever_o be_v see_v and_o touch_v and_o fall_v under_o sense_n be_v a_o body_n and_o to_o the_o end_n nothing_o be_v want_v to_o establish_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o father_n in_o the_o point_n of_o the_o eucharist_n i_o add_v unto_o direct_a proof_n a_o great_a many_o indirect_a proof_n take_v from_o their_o word_n and_o action_n whence_o be_v draw_v several_a induction_n which_o contribute_v very_o much_o to_o show_v what_o be_v their_o sentiment_n of_o this_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n then_o i_o represent_v the_o alteration_n and_o change_n happen_v in_o the_o ancient_a expression_n and_o doctrine_n the_o contest_v of_o the_o nine_o age_n whereunto_o if_o i_o mistake_v not_o i_o have_v give_v much_o light_n by_o certain_a consideration_n which_o show_v as_o clear_a as_o the_o light_n which_o of_o the_o two_o opinion_n have_v the_o better_a that_o of_o paschasius_fw-la or_o that_o of_o his_o adversary_n the_o history_n of_o the_o ten_o age_n shall_v be_v represent_v in_o such_o a_o manner_n i_o hope_v as_o will_v not_o be_v displease_v unto_o the_o candid_a reader_n see_v it_o will_v inform_v he_o that_o in_o that_o age_n which_o i_o consider_v neither_o as_o a_o age_n of_o darkness_n nor_o of_o light_n but_o participate_v of_o both_o wherein_o thing_n pass_v otherwise_o than_o have_v be_v hitherto_o believe_v i_o treat_v exact_o of_o what_o pass_v in_o the_o eleven_o century_n in_o regard_n of_o berengarius_fw-la and_o his_o follower_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o albigenses_n and_o waldenses_n in_o the_o twelve_o and_o thirteen_o century_n of_o wicklif_n and_o the_o lollard_n in_o england_n in_o the_o fourteen_o age_n of_o the_o taborite_n in_o bohemia_n in_o the_o fifteen_o and_o until_o the_o separation_n of_o the_o protestant_n with_o some_o observation_n which_o i_o make_v from_o age_n to_o age_n upon_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o in_o the_o last_o part_n wherein_o i_o treat_v of_o the_o worship_n i_o examine_v the_o preparation_n which_o precede_v the_o celebration_n i_o inquire_v the_o time_n wherein_o christian_n begin_v to_o introduce_v in_o the_o exercise_n of_o their_o religion_n the_o use_n of_o incense_n and_o candle_n especial_o at_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n unto_o this_o practice_n i_o add_v that_o of_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n and_o also_o of_o material_a cross_n the_o consideration_n of_o holy_a vestment_n and_o of_o those_o particular_o appoint_v for_o this_o holy_a ceremony_n not_o forget_v that_o of_o flower_n which_o be_v use_v in_o form_n of_o coronet_n or_o otherwise_o in_o honour_n of_o the_o eucharist_n i_o make_v one_o chapter_n of_o the_o disposition_n requisite_a for_o a_o communicant_a in_o respect_n of_o god_n and_o of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o another_o of_o those_o which_o he_o ought_v to_o have_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o engage_v i_o to_o speak_v something_o of_o auricular_a confession_n and_o to_o inquire_v whether_o the_o holy_a father_n have_v require_v it_o as_o a_o disposition_n absolute_o necessary_a unto_o a_o lawful_a communion_n and_o i_o conclude_v the_o whole_a work_n with_o the_o question_n of_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o i_o treat_v of_o with_o some_o care_n and_o exactness_n to_o the_o end_n the_o reader_n may_v see_v what_o have_v be_v the_o belief_n and_o practice_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n on_o so_o important_a a_o point_n as_o this_o be_v and_o when_o the_o first_o decree_n be_v make_v for_o worship_v the_o host_n i_o know_v very_o well_o there_o can_v be_v nothing_o of_o testimony_n be_v it_o never_o so_o clear_a but_o the_o subtlety_n of_o man_n will_v find_v mean_n to_o elude_v and_o this_o be_v it_o which_o have_v render_v and_o will_v render_v the_o dispute_n of_o religion_n immortal_a many_o of_o those_o who_o handle_v they_o seek_v more_o their_o own_o than_o god_n glory_n and_o examine_v the_o passage_n of_o the_o ancient_n with_o the_o prejudices_fw-la they_o have_v be_v before_o prepossess_v with_o thence_o it_o be_v that_o behold_v they_o
figurative_o and_o on_o the_o contrary_a that_o they_o speak_v literal_o and_o proper_o when_o they_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v bread_n and_o wine_n now_o the_o reader_n will_v perceive_v in_o peruse_v this_o treatise_n what_o manner_n of_o speak_v these_o holy_a doctor_n have_v use_v herein_o for_o it_o be_v enough_o for_o i_o here_o to_o propose_v unto_o he_o the_o mean_n of_o right_a understanding_n they_o the_o four_o rule_n to_o be_v observe_v for_o the_o right_a understanding_n their_o testimony_n be_v not_o to_o make_v they_o clash_v one_o against_o another_o nor_o to_o imbroil_v they_o in_o contradiction_n for_o it_o must_v be_v suppose_v that_o they_o be_v prudent_a and_o judicious_a enough_o not_o to_o contradict_v themselves_o and_o to_o keep_v themselves_o from_o a_o reproach_n which_o will_v have_v be_v cast_v on_o they_o have_v that_o befall_v they_o there_o be_v two_o thing_n in_o their_o work_n relate_v to_o the_o matter_n we_o treat_v of_o which_o shall_v be_v careful_o distinguish_v but_o in_o such_o sort_n as_o to_o take_v they_o always_o in_o good_a sense_n i_o mean_v the_o ground_n of_o their_o doctrine_n and_o its_o consequence_n and_o indeed_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n have_v have_v its_o consequence_n as_o the_o great_a number_n of_o doctrine_n have_v have_v it_o be_v evident_a that_o of_o two_o explication_n which_o may_v be_v give_v unto_o it_o there_o be_v but_o one_o that_o be_v true_a that_o which_o shall_v make_v a_o contradiction_n betwixt_o the_o doctrine_n and_o its_o consequence_n and_o the_o consequence_n and_o the_o doctrine_n be_v false_a and_o contrary_a to_o their_o intention_n whereas_o that_o that_o reconcile_v both_o be_v lawful_a and_o genuine_a for_o their_o doctrine_n must_v be_v consider_v with_o its_o consequence_n as_o a_o body_n whereof_o all_o the_o part_n shall_v have_v a_o dependence_n the_o one_o to_o the_o other_o and_o all_o tend_v to_o the_o same_o end_n as_o so_o many_o line_n to_o the_o centre_n i_o have_v examine_v a_o great_a many_o of_o these_o consequence_n in_o this_o history_n to_o the_o end_n that_o those_o who_o read_v it_o may_v judge_v if_o they_o agree_v with_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o doctrine_n and_o if_o the_o doctrine_n and_o its_o consequence_n do_v favour_n the_o substantial_a change_n for_o if_o the_o consequence_n favour_v this_o change_n it_o will_v be_v a_o great_a presumption_n that_o the_o doctrine_n do_v not_o disfavour_v it_o although_o it_o shall_v not_o so_o positive_o establish_v it_o as_o the_o latin_n have_v do_v but_o also_o if_o all_o these_o consequence_n be_v direct_o opposite_a unto_o the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n it_o will_v be_v a_o manifest_a proof_n that_o the_o ground_n of_o the_o doctrine_n be_v no_o less_o opposite_a unto_o it_o and_o that_o the_o ancient_n have_v not_o receive_v this_o doctrine_n into_o the_o object_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o that_o they_o make_v it_o not_o a_o article_n of_o their_o belief_n this_o four_o rule_n shall_v be_v strengthen_v with_o a_o five_o which_o appear_v no_o less_o important_a unto_o i_o and_o which_o only_a demand_n that_o doubtful_a and_o uncertain_a passage_n ought_v to_o be_v explain_v by_o certain_a passage_n and_o the_o obscure_a by_o the_o clear_a and_o manifest_a one_o this_o be_v a_o maxim_n of_o tertullian_n which_o i_o will_v not_o allege_v in_o this_o place_n because_o it_o be_v allege_v in_o the_o body_n of_o the_o work_n but_o after_o all_o there_o be_v nothing_o more_o just_a and_o reasonable_a it_o often_o befall_v most_o author_n to_o deliver_v themselves_o more_o happy_o at_o one_o time_n than_o at_o another_o though_o they_o treat_v of_o the_o same_o subject_a it_o happen_v unto_o some_o through_o neglect_n or_o not_o have_v well_o digest_v their_o thought_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o express_v themselves_o clear_o on_o a_o subject_a if_o the_o mind_n have_v only_o confuse_v notion_n of_o it_o other_o do_v so_o for_o reason_n which_o may_v here_o be_v say_v particular_o of_o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n when_o they_o treat_v of_o the_o sacrament_n principal_o of_o that_o of_o the_o eucharist_n for_o there_o be_v certain_a time_n and_o place_n when_o they_o explain_v not_o themselves_o so_o clear_o as_o at_o other_o time_n although_o they_o never_o say_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o their_o sentiment_n the_o discipline_n of_o their_o time_n not_o suffer_v they_o to_o do_v otherwise_o but_o however_o the_o matter_n happen_v it_o seem_v very_o just_a and_o equal_a when_o the_o mind_n of_o a_o author_n will_v be_v know_v upon_o a_o matter_n which_o he_o have_v treat_v in_o divers_a place_n in_o some_o place_n clear_a than_o at_o other_o to_o have_v recourse_n unto_o those_o place_n wherein_o he_o have_v most_o clear_o explain_v himself_o and_o by_o those_o to_o interpret_v the_o other_o wherein_o he_o express_v himself_o more_o obscure_o either_o through_o inadvertency_n or_o for_o reason_n more_o dark_o and_o ambiguous_o this_o kind_n of_o proceed_v be_v natural_a unto_o all_o mankind_n and_o reason_n show_v it_o be_v the_o safe_a way_n can_v be_v take_v in_o these_o occasion_n i_o will_v not_o fear_v to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o only_a mean_n to_o terminate_v the_o dispute_n and_o controversy_n of_o religion_n because_o they_o all_o arise_v from_o the_o several_a interpretation_n give_v unto_o passage_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o of_o those_o of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n they_o may_v be_v easy_o reconcile_v if_o man_n will_v agree_v that_o the_o most_o clear_a and_o intelligible_a shall_v serve_v as_o a_o commentary_n unto_o the_o more_o difficult_a and_o obscure_a unto_o all_o these_o rule_v i_o will_v add_v a_o six_o which_o shall_v be_v the_o last_o the_o father_n be_v on_o this_o occasion_n to_o be_v consider_v as_o witness_n examine_v to_o learn_v of_o they_o what_o be_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n touch_v the_o sacrament_n there_o be_v no_o question_n to_o be_v make_v but_o that_o the_o great_a number_n ought_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o less_o and_o that_o the_o lesser_a number_n ought_v to_o submit_v unto_o the_o great_a thing_n be_v otherwise_o alike_o i_o mean_v both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o be_v of_o equal_a authority_n and_o their_o testimony_n alike_o worthy_a of_o belief_n for_o instance_n if_o eight_o or_o ten_o among_o they_o shall_v unanimous_o depose_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v abolish_v by_o the_o consecration_n and_o that_o there_o remain_v only_o the_o accident_n and_o appearance_n which_o subsist_v miraculous_o without_o any_o subject_a and_o that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o that_o say_v to_o the_o contrary_a it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v doubt_v but_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o ten_o aught_o to_o be_v prefer_v before_o one_o single_a person_n because_o every_o one_o of_o the_o ten_o be_v as_o credible_a in_o his_o particular_a as_o he_o that_o be_v alone_o of_o his_o own_o opinion_n and_o that_o there_o be_v much_o more_o likelihood_n that_o one_o single_a person_n may_v be_v mistake_v in_o relate_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o church_n than_o ten_o person_n that_o agree_v in_o their_o testimony_n but_o by_o the_o same_o reason_n if_o ten_o be_v find_v that_o testify_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n remain_v after_o consecration_n and_o that_o on_o the_o contrary_a one_o single_a person_n shall_v say_v it_o be_v change_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n we_o be_v oblige_v to_o confess_v that_o the_o belief_n for_o the_o which_o the_o ten_o person_n do_v declare_v have_v be_v the_o true_a belief_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o that_o the_o sentiment_n of_o this_o single_a person_n be_v a_o particular_a opinion_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v reject_v or_o at_o the_o least_o if_o possible_a endeavour_v to_o recover_v he_o unto_o the_o general_a opinion_n believe_v among_o the_o christian_n of_o his_o time_n by_o give_v unto_o his_o word_n a_o more_o mild_a explication_n and_o the_o most_o favourable_a construction_n that_o may_v be_v i_o think_v no_o body_n can_v reasonable_o condemn_v the_o mean_n which_o i_o have_v propose_v the_o practice_n whereof_o may_v conduce_v very_o much_o to_o the_o right_a understanding_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n provide_v we_o observe_v they_o sincere_o and_o no_o other_o end_n be_v propose_v in_o explain_v their_o testimony_n but_o what_o i_o have_v have_v in_o report_v they_o in_o this_o treatise_n that_o be_v a_o love_n of_o the_o truth_n 1._o tertul._n de_fw-fr virgin_n veland_n c._n 1._o against_o which_o no_o prescription_n can_v be_v make_v neither_o by_o length_n of_o time_n by_o the_o credit_n of_o person_n nor_o by_o the_o privilege_n of_o country_n to_o conclude_v the_o reader_n may_v be_v please_v
the_o assembly_n of_o these_o milerable_a creature_n which_o can_v be_v read_v without_o horror_n and_o on_o this_o occasion_n i_o have_v rather_o imitate_v the_o modesty_n of_o s._n cyrill_n of_o jerusalem_n than_o the_o liberty_n of_o s._n epiphanius_n that_o be_v be_v as_o wary_a in_o write_v these_o abominable_a mystery_n as_o s._n cyrill_n be_v in_o preach_v when_o he_o be_v absolute_o necessitate_v to_o say_v something_o of_o they_o nevertheless_o those_o who_o desire_v to_o see_v the_o particularity_n of_o what_o pass_v in_o the_o celebration_n 26._o epiphan_n hare_n 26._o which_o these_o miserable_a wretch_n pretend_v to_o make_v in_o the_o eucharist_n need_v only_o read_v what_o s._n epiphanius_n have_v write_v in_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o gnostic_n whilst_o i_o shall_v only_o mark_v that_o when_o any_o of_o the_o woman_n which_o they_o have_v debauch_a be_v with_o child_n they_o use_v mean_n to_o make_v she_o miscarry_v and_o discharge_v her_o burden_n when_o they_o list_v then_o will_v they_o take_v the_o infant_n and_o pound_n it_o in_o a_o mortar_n with_o honey_n pepper_n and_o other_o aromatic_a drug_n after_o which_o this_o fraternity_n of_o swine_n and_o dog_n be_v assemble_v each_o of_o they_o will_v take_v of_o this_o infant_n so_o pound_v and_o will_v eat_v of_o it_o which_o do_v they_o will_v make_v their_o prayer_n unto_o god_n and_o esteem_v this_o ceremony_n for_o a_o perfect_a and_o complete_a sacrament_n and_o because_o these_o abominable_a heretic_n assume_v the_o name_n of_o christian_n they_o be_v the_o cause_n that_o pagan_n and_o infidel_n impute_v unto_o the_o whole_a christian_a church_n these_o horrible_a impiety_n and_o it_o be_v the_o end_n which_o satan_n propose_v in_o raise_v up_o these_o execrable_a wretch_n 7._o ●useb_fw-mi hist_o eccles_n l._n 4._o c._n 7._o the_o devil_n say_v eusebius_n make_v use_n of_o these_o instrument_n have_v in_o the_o first_o place_n east_n into_o hell_n like_o so_o many_o slave_n those_o who_o they_o have_v seduce_v then_o he_o give_v unto_o the_o gentile_n profess_a enemy_n of_o our_o religion_n a_o large_a and_o ample_a subject_n and_o matter_n to_o scandalize_v and_o speak_v evil_a of_o the_o gospel_n in_o as_o much_o as_o this_o infamy_n which_o take_v its_o original_a from_o the_o gnostic_n be_v impute_v unto_o all_o the_o christian_n to_o disgrace_v they_o he_o also_o observe_v that_o it_o be_v from_o thence_o the_o false_a rumour_n be_v raise_v and_o spread_v abroad_o of_o their_o unlawful_a copulation_n wherewith_o they_o be_v asperse_v of_o brethren_n with_o sister_n and_o child_n with_o their_o own_o mother_n as_o also_o of_o these_o barbarous_a and_o inhuman_a feast_n where_o the_o flesh_n of_o some_o little_a innocent_a infant_n be_v serve_v up_o as_o meat_n and_o nourishment_n sup_v epiph._n ub_z sup_v s._n epiphanius_n have_v also_o observe_v that_o it_o be_v a_o device_n of_o the_o devil_n to_o slander_v the_o purity_n of_o the_o christian_a religion_n and_o to_o stop_v the_o progress_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n 16._o orig._n cor_o troth_n cell_n l._n 2._o &_o l._n 2._o in_o rom._n baron_n ad_fw-la a_o 120._o ●_o 125_o 126_o 129._o cyrill_n hieros_n catech._n 16._o it_o be_v also_o unto_o the_o abominable_a mystery_n of_o the_o gnostic_n that_o origen_n impute_v the_o cause_n of_o those_o same_o infamous_a report_n and_o cardinal_n baronius_n in_o his_o ecclesiastical_a annal_n refer_v they_o unto_o the_o same_o cause_n and_o confess_v they_o be_v their_o rise_n and_o original_a s._n cyrill_a of_o jerusalem_n in_o his_o catechism_n derive_v these_o reproach_n against_o christian_n and_o those_o calumny_n wherewith_o they_o asperse_v their_o holy_a profession_n not_o from_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o gnostic_n as_o other_o do_v but_o from_o those_o of_o the_o montanist_n which_o nevertheless_o can_v be_v because_o s._n justin_n martyr_n who_o live_v before_o montanus_n make_v mention_n of_o it_o nevertheless_o s._n cyrill_n impute_v something_o of_o that_o kind_n unto_o the_o montanist_n we_o shall_v be_v oblige_v to_o say_v something_o thereof_o when_o we_o shall_v have_v do_v with_o the_o gnostic_n in_o the_o mean_a while_o i_o shall_v say_v two_o thing_n first_o that_o several_a of_o the_o holy_a father_n have_v in_o their_o write_n hint_v these_o false_a report_n which_o be_v spread_v abroad_o to_o the_o disgrace_n of_o christian_n but_o without_o touch_v the_o cause_n that_o produce_v they_o as_o justin_n martyr_n and_o athenagoras_n in_o their_o apology_n tatian_n against_o the_o greek_n theophilus_n of_o antioch_n in_o his_o book_n to_o autolycus_n tertullian_n in_o his_o treatise_n to_o the_o nation_n and_o in_o his_o apologetic_n minutius_n felix_n in_o his_o octavius_n the_o second_o thing_n be_v that_o although_o several_a have_v speak_v of_o the_o gnostic_n beside_o s._n epiphanius_n as_o s._n iraeneus_n philastrius_n bishop_n of_o bresse_n s._n austin_n and_o theodoret_n and_o that_o the_o three_o last_o have_v mention_v their_o abominable_a mystery_n nevertheless_o because_o s._n epiphanius_n have_v do_v it_o more_o exact_o than_o any_o of_o they_o and_o that_o he_o have_v particular_o observe_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v practise_v in_o those_o wicked_a assembly_n we_o have_v follow_v what_o he_o have_v write_v of_o they_o but_o because_o some_o of_o the_o father_n have_v say_v that_o the_o montanist_n and_o pepusian_o practise_v something_o very_o like_o the_o abomination_n of_o the_o gnostic_n it_o will_v be_v necessary_a after_o have_v treat_v of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o one_o to_o examine_v and_o treat_v of_o the_o mystery_n and_o eucharist_n of_o the_o other_o montanus_n be_v a_o arch-heretick_n bear_v in_o a_o village_n call_v ardaba_n in_o a_o part_n of_o myssia_n border_v upon_o phrygia_n and_o not_o be_v able_a to_o satisfy_v his_o ambition_n which_o make_v he_o aspire_v unto_o the_o chief_a power_n in_o the_o place_n of_o his_o birth_n he_o suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v corrupt_v with_o the_o inspiration_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v possess_v with_o a_o prophetic_a spirit_n he_o undertake_v to_o reveal_v thing_n to_o come_v and_o choose_v for_o his_o companion_n priscilla_n and_o maximilla_n which_o he_o make_v pass_v for_o prophetess_n some_o say_v that_o he_o call_v himself_o the_o paraclete_n other_o say_v that_o he_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v in_o he_o the_o promise_n be_v to_o be_v accomplish_v which_o jesus_n christ_n make_v of_o send_v his_o spirit_n after_o his_o ascension_n into_o heaven_n and_o not_o upon_o the_o apostle_n as_o the_o gospel_n do_v testify_v s._n epiphanius_n and_o other_o say_v that_o he_o differ_v nothing_o from_o the_o catholic_n and_o the_o orthodox_n as_o to_o matter_n of_o doctrine_n but_o only_o as_o to_o discipline_n which_o he_o establish_v more_o strict_a and_o austere_a than_o other_o christian_n this_o severity_n be_v so_o take_v with_o tertullian_n that_o he_o suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v surprise_v and_o be_v so_o obstinate_a that_o although_o he_o be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a wit_n and_o learn_a man_n of_o his_o time_n yet_o he_o call_v the_o catholic_n mere_a libertine_n sensual_a and_o carnal_a but_o in_o fine_a he_o leave_v great_a number_n of_o sectary_n and_o follower_n which_o from_o he_o be_v call_v montanist_n cataphrygian_o from_o phrygia_n where_o they_o make_v their_o chief_a residence_n and_o pepusians_n from_o a_o little_a village_n of_o that_o country_n call_v pepusia_n but_o by_o they_o call_v jerusalem_n to_o make_v it_o the_o more_o famous_a and_o to_o raise_v the_o dignity_n and_o credit_n of_o it_o and_o it_o be_v unto_o these_o follower_n of_o montanus_n that_o several_a have_v impute_v the_o like_a mystery_n of_o the_o abominable_a gnostic_n 13._o philast_n de_fw-fr haeres_fw-la l._n 4._o bibl._n pat._n p._n 13._o philastrius_n in_o his_o catalogue_n of_o heresy_n charge_v they_o with_o celebrate_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o cynic_n and_o the_o execrable_a impiety_n which_o be_v commit_v in_o murder_v a_o little_a infant_n who_o blood_n they_o mingle_v as_o he_o say_v in_o their_o passeover_n and_o in_o their_o sacrifice_n 178._o isid_n pelus_n l._n 1._o ep._n 242._o cyrill_a hierosol_n carech_n 16._o p._n 178._o s._n isidore_n of_o damieta_n mention_n somewhat_o in_o his_o letter_n but_o it_o be_v nothing_o in_o respect_n of_o what_o s._n cyrill_n of_o jerusalem_n report_v in_o his_o catechism_n this_o montanus_n say_v he_o be_v distract_v and_o out_o of_o his_o wit_n have_v the_o impudence_n to_o say_v that_o he_o be_v the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o that_o be_v a_o miserable_a a_o vile_a wretched_a man_n and_o full_a of_o all_o mann●r_n of_o impiety_n and_o wickedness_n which_o it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o intimate_v by_o some_o sign_n ethrough_a respect_n which_o be_v to_o be_v have_v unto_o some_o woman_n here_o present_a he_o strangle_v young_a child_n and_o cut_v they_o in_o
of_o a_o sacrament_n of_o communion_n for_o the_o benefit_n of_o all_o christian_n therefore_o it_o be_v 13._o constit_fw-la apostol_n l._n 8._o c._n 13._o that_o the_o author_n of_o apostolical_a constitution_n mention_v the_o person_n who_o ought_v to_o communicate_v and_o in_o what_o manner_n he_o comprehend_v general_o all_o faithful_a christian_n as_o well_o clergy_n as_o people_n without_o distinguish_a age_n or_o sex_n john_n cochloeus_fw-la write_v against_o musculus_fw-la a_o protestant_a josse_n clicthou_n upon_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o mass_n liturg._n apud_fw-la cass_n in_o liturg._n and_o vitus_n amerpachius_fw-la all_o three_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o rome_n confess_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o tradition_n which_o we_o have_v establish_v and_o the_o two_o former_a confirm_v it_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o pope_n calixtus_n which_o practice_n be_v at_o this_o time_n observe_v in_o other_o christian_a communion_n and_o which_o i_o make_v no_o doubt_n be_v always_o observe_v in_o the_o west_n because_o at_o the_o time_n it_o cease_v in_o the_o latin_a church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o the_o twelve_o century_n at_o soon_a those_o who_o go_v out_o and_o depart_v from_o she_o observe_v it_o very_o religious_o never_o celebrate_v the_o eucharist_n without_o communicant_n until_o the_o last_o separation_n of_o protestant_n who_o practice_n also_o it_o be_v have_v speak_v of_o the_o communion_n of_o age_a person_n we_o must_v treat_v of_o that_o of_o young_a child_n according_a to_o the_o rule_n which_o be_v propose_v st._n cyprian_n report_v the_o story_n of_o a_o little_a christian_a girl_n 175._o cypr._n the_o lap_n p._n 175._o who_o nurse_n have_v carry_v she_o unto_o the_o pagan_a temple_n where_o they_o make_v she_o eat_v bread_n steep_v in_o wine_n both_o have_v be_v consecrate_v unto_o idol_n and_o that_o afterward_o as_o her_o turn_n come_v to_o communicate_v in_o the_o christian_a church_n they_o have_v very_o much_o trouble_v to_o open_v the_o child_n lip_n into_o who_o mouth_n with_o much_o ado_n they_o pour_v a_o little_a of_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o cup_n but_o in_o vain_a 59_o id._n ep._n 59_o the_o sacrament_n say_v he_o not_o endure_v to_o abide_v in_o this_o pollute_a mouth_n and_o body_n and_o indeed_o she_o vomit_v what_o they_o have_v force_v she_o to_o take_v the_o same_o may_v be_v collect_v from_o another_o place_n in_o his_o work_n where_o he_o define_v with_o his_o brethren_n and_o fellow_n bishop_n that_o nothing_o hinder_v the_o baptise_v of_o infant_n present_o after_o their_o birth_n because_o that_o for_o the_o most_o part_n the_o participation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n follow_v the_o reception_n of_o baptism_n and_o to_o say_v the_o truth_n it_o seem_v that_o he_o explain_v himself_o sufficient_o not_o to_o leave_v we_o the_o least_o doubt_n of_o it_o in_o the_o apostolical_a constitution_n 13._o const_n apost_n l._n 8._o c._n 13._o child_n be_v count_v among_o those_o who_o ought_v to_o communicate_v this_o custom_n than_o be_v very_o ancient_a see_v we_o find_v it_o establish_v in_o the_o three_o century_n but_o if_o it_o be_v ancient_a it_o be_v also_o of_o a_o large_a extent_n this_o custom_n have_v since_o continue_v in_o all_o christian_a climate_n and_o country_n and_o be_v at_o this_o time_n practise_v in_o all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o greek_n the_o russian_n or_o moscovite_n the_o armenian_n and_o ethiopian_n and_o we_o do_v not_o find_v that_o those_o christian_a communion_n have_v ever_o lay_v it_o aside_o which_o do_v full_o prove_v what_o we_o say_v that_o this_o custom_n be_v soon_o spread_v into_o all_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n but_o to_o speak_v particular_o of_o the_o latin_a church_n we_o must_v as_o near_o as_o may_v be_v follow_v the_o step_n of_o this_o ancient_a practice_n and_o in_o the_o first_o place_n i_o will_v instance_n in_o what_o have_v be_v say_v by_o the_o jesuit_n maldonat_n in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o st._n john_n 53._o maldon_n in_o c._n 6._o joan._n v._o 53._o i_o lay_v apart_o say_v he_o the_o opinion_n of_o st._n austin_n and_o of_o innocent_a the_o first_o which_o be_v believe_v and_o practise_v in_o the_o church_n six_o hundred_o year_n that_o the_o sacrament_n also_o be_v necessary_a for_o young_a child_n at_o present_a the_o thing_n have_v be_v clear_v by_o the_o church_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o several_a age_n and_o by_o a_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n that_o not_o only_o it_o be_v not_o necessary_a for_o they_o 93._o ep._n ad_fw-la syn._n mil._n apud_fw-la aug._n ep._n 93._o but_o that_o also_o it_o be_v not_o permit_v to_o give_v it_o unto_o they_o and_o indeed_o innocent_a the_o first_o show_v plain_o that_o it_o be_v the_o practice_n of_o his_o time_n that_o be_v of_o the_o five_o century_n as_o for_o st._n austin_n his_o constant_a doctrine_n in_o a_o great_a many_o passage_n of_o his_o work_n be_v that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v necessary_a unto_o young_a child_n for_o obtain_v eternal_a life_n i_o shall_v content_v myself_o with_o two_o or_o three_o passage_n of_o this_o famous_a doctor_n 20._o aug._n de_fw-fr pec_fw-la mer._n &_o rem_fw-la l._n 1._o c_o 20._o let_v we_o hear_v say_v he_o the_o lord_n say_v of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o holy_a table_n unto_o which_o no_o body_n approach_v as_o they_o ought_v unless_o they_o be_v first_o baptise_a if_o you_o eat_v not_o my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v not_o my_o blood_n you_o have_v no_o life_n in_o you_o what_o more_o do_v we_o look_v for_o what_o can_v be_v reply_v to_o this_o only_o that_o obstinacy_n knit_v its_o sinew_n to_o resist_v the_o force_n of_o this_o evident_a truth_n else_o dare_v any_o one_o deny_v but_o that_o this_o speech_n concern_v little_a child_n and_o that_o they_o can_v have_v life_n in_o themselves_o without_o the_o participation_n of_o this_o body_n and_o of_o this_o blood_n 24._o id._n ibid._n 24._o and_o in_o the_o same_o book_n it_o be_v with_o great_a reason_n that_o the_o christian_n of_o africa_n call_v baptism_n salvation_n and_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n life_n whence_o be_v that_o as_o i_o think_v but_o from_o a_o ancient_a and_o apostolical_a tradition_n by_o which_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n hold_v for_o certain_a that_o no_o body_n can_v attain_v either_o unto_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n or_o unto_o salvation_n or_o eternal_a life_n without_o baptism_n and_o the_o participation_n of_o the_o supper_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o writing_n against_o julian_n the_o pelagian_a alibi_fw-la id._n contr_n jul._n l._n 2._o c._n 1._o &_o alibi_fw-la what_o say_v he_o will_v you_o have_v i_o do_v be_v it_o that_o the_o lord_n say_v if_o you_o eat_v not_o my_o flesh_n etc._n etc._n i_o ought_v to_o say_v that_o young_a child_n who_o die_v without_o this_o sacrament_n shall_v have_v life_n the_o same_o thing_n may_v be_v justify_v by_o several_a other_o doctor_n of_o the_o same_o time_n but_o see_v it_o be_v own_v by_o both_o side_n it_o will_v be_v needless_a it_o may_v be_v only_o observe_v that_o maldonat_n set_v not_o his_o bound_n right_o when_o he_o include_v this_o use_n or_o rather_o abuse_v in_o or_o about_o the_o six_o first_o century_n for_o beside_o that_o there_o be_v mention_v make_v of_o communicate_v infant_n present_o after_o baptism_n in_o gregory_n the_o first_o his_o book_n of_o sacrament_n lirin_fw-mi lib._n sacram._n greg._n p._n 73.74_o conc._n tol._n 11._o can._n 11._o vit._n leufr_n c._n 17._o in_o chron._n insulae_fw-la lirin_fw-mi we_o have_v a_o canon_n in_o the_o eleven_o council_n of_o toledo_n anno_fw-la 675._o which_o plain_o command_v it_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o eight_o century_n the_o life_n of_o the_o abbot_n leufred_n afford_v a_o example_n of_o this_o custom_n for_o we_o therein_o read_v that_o charles_n martel_n have_v desire_v he_o by_o his_o prayer_n to_o restore_v health_n unto_o his_o son_n griphon_n who_o be_v afflict_v with_o a_o great_a fever_n among_o several_a thing_n which_o he_o do_v it_o be_v observe_v that_o he_o give_v unto_o he_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n charlemagne_n in_o a_o treatise_n write_v by_o his_o order_n and_o in_o his_o name_n do_v plain_o show_v that_o this_o be_v still_o practise_v in_o the_o west_n at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o eight_o century_n 27._o de_fw-fr imag._n l._n 2._o c._n 27._o for_o he_o not_o only_o say_v that_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n without_o participate_v of_o the_o eucharist_n but_o he_o also_o mention_v the_o communion_n of_o little_a child_n 8._o capit._fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 16._o suppl_n conc._n gal._n p._n 183._o c._n 7._o ibid._n p._n 306._o c._n 8._o who_o he_o represent_v unto_o we_o feed_v and_o nourish_v with_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o in_o his_o capitulary_n he_o command_v that_o priest_n
every_o one_o shall_v and_o ought_v with_o all_o diligence_n and_o fidelity_n to_o contribute_v his_o endeavour_n and_o improve_v the_o talon_n which_o our_o lord_n have_v commit_v unto_o his_o trust_n this_o be_v what_o i_o have_v endeavour_v to_o do_v hitherto_o and_o which_o i_o intend_v to_o do_v for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v if_o it_o be_v not_o with_o all_o the_o delight_n and_o ornament_n the_o reader_n can_v wish_v at_o least_o it_o shall_v be_v with_o all_o the_o sincerity_n which_o can_v be_v expect_v from_o one_o who_o believe_v to_o have_v well_o bestow_v his_o labour_n and_o pain_n if_o his_o endeavour_n will_v create_v in_o the_o mind_n of_o christian_n divide_v by_o various_a opinion_n in_o religion_n more_o tender_a inclination_n of_o love_n and_o charity_n and_o great_a desire_n unto_o peace_n and_o concord_n we_o have_v already_o see_v all_o that_o relate_v unto_o the_o outward_a form_n of_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n with_o the_o alteration_n thereunto_o happen_v in_o succession_n of_o time_n now_o we_o must_v endeavour_v to_o discover_v what_o have_v be_v believe_v of_o this_o mystery_n in_o this_o large_a and_o spacious_a country_n but_o to_o do_v it_o the_o more_o orderly_o and_o to_o show_v with_o more_o ease_n and_o clearness_n the_o history_n of_o the_o innovation_n which_o have_v happen_v as_o well_o in_o the_o expression_n as_o in_o the_o doctrine_n we_o will_v extend_v our_o proof_n as_o to_o the_o expression_n but_o unto_o the_o seven_o and_o eight_o century_n at_o which_o time_n they_o suffer_v some_o attempt_n and_o as_o to_o the_o doctrine_n unto_o the_o nine_o suppose_v it_o receive_v some_o alteration_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o that_o age._n chap._n i._n the_o reflection_n make_v by_o the_o father_n upon_o the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o sacrament_n the_o holy_a father_n have_v so_o great_a a_o love_n for_o jesus_n christ_n and_o veneration_n for_o all_o his_o institution_n that_o they_o take_v a_o singular_a pleasure_n in_o meditate_v upon_o this_o great_a mystery_n and_o in_o make_v divers_a reflection_n upon_o this_o divine_a institution_n our_o lord_n say_v of_o the_o bread_n which_o he_o have_v take_v which_o he_o bless_a and_o which_o he_o break_v that_o it_o be_v his_o body_n and_o of_o the_o wine_n that_o it_o be_v his_o blood_n the_o ancient_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n consider_v this_o expression_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n have_v declare_v with_o a_o common_a consent_n and_o as_o it_o be_v unite_a suffrage_n that_o jesus_n christ_n call_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n his_o body_n and_o his_o blood_n our_o lord_n say_v st._n irenaeus_n patr._n iren._n l._n 5._o c._n 2._o tatian_n tom_fw-mi 7._o bibl._n patr._n have_v assure_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v his_o body_n tatian_n in_o his_o harmony_n upon_o the_o evangelist_n say_v that_o he_o testify_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o the_o cup_n of_o wine_n be_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n tertullian_n magn._n tertul._n l._n 5._o contr_n jud._n c._n 11._o &_o l._n 5._o carm._n count_v marc._n origen_n in_o matth._n hom._n 35._o cyprian_a ep._n 75._o ad_fw-la magn._n that_o he_o call_v the_o bread_n his_o body_n and_o that_o he_o say_v of_o the_o bread_n and_o of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o vine_n this_o be_v my_o body_n and_o my_o blood_n pour_v out_o origen_n in_o one_o of_o his_o homily_n upon_o st._n matthew_n that_o he_o confess_v the_o bread_n be_v his_o body_n and_o the_o bless_a martyr_n st._n cyprian_a that_o he_o call_v his_o body_n the_o bread_n which_o be_v make_v of_o the_o collection_n of_o several_a grain_n the_o author_n of_o the_o commentary_n upon_o the_o evangelist_n which_o go_v in_o the_o name_n of_o theophilus_n of_o antioch_n though_o it_o be_v not_o certain_a whether_o they_o be_v his_o for_o all_o they_o be_v attribute_v unto_o he_o in_o the_o library_n of_o the_o father_n this_o author_n i_o say_v have_v express_v his_o thought_n almost_o as_o st._n cyprian_n have_v do_v say_v that_o jesus_n christ_n call_v his_o body_n matth._n theophil_n antioch_n in_o matth._n the_o bread_n which_o be_v make_v of_o the_o collection_n of_o divers_a grain_n and_o his_o blood_n the_o wine_n which_o be_v press_v out_o of_o several_a grape_n and_o this_o he_o say_v in_o explain_v the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o the_o sacrament_n this_o be_v my_o body_n this_o be_v the_o cup_n of_o my_o blood_n eusebius_n bishop_n of_o caesarea_n in_o palestin_n have_v no_o other_o meaning_n i_o think_v when_o he_o say_v 8._o euseb_n dem._n lib._n 8._o that_o the_o lord_n command_v to_o make_v use_n of_o bread_n for_o the_o symbol_n of_o his_o body_n nor_o st._n cyrill_n of_o jerusalem_n in_o these_o word_n 4._o cyrill_n hie_v of_o mystag_n 4._o our_o lord_n speak_v and_o say_v of_o the_o bread_n this_o be_v my_o body_n nor_o the_o poet_n juvencus_n when_o he_o declare_v hist_o juvenc_n l._n 4._o de_fw-fr evang._n hist_o that_o our_o saviour_n give_v the_o bread_n unto_o his_o disciple_n teach_v they_o that_o he_o give_v they_o his_o body_n nor_o in_o fine_a a_o unknown_a author_n in_o the_o work_v of_o st._n athanasius_n which_o say_v 9.72_o de_fw-fr dict._n &_o interp._n parab_n 9.72_o that_o our_o lord_n call_v the_o mystical_a wine_n his_o blood_n st._n epiphanius_n hinder_v by_o the_o scruple_n which_o the_o father_n make_v of_o call_v the_o symbol_n of_o the_o eucharist_n bread_n and_o wine_n content_v himself_o to_o intimate_v unto_o we_o that_o jesus_n christ_n do_v assimilate_v his_o body_n unto_o a_o subject_a round_o as_o to_o its_o form_n anchor_n epiphan_n in_o anchor_n and_o without_o sense_n as_o to_o its_o power_n have_v no_o manner_n of_o resemblance_n unto_o the_o incarnate_a image_n nor_o with_o the_o proportion_n of_o member_n exod._n gaudent_fw-la tract_n 2._o in_o exod._n st._n gaudentius_n observe_v that_o our_o lord_n in_o give_v the_o consecrate_a bread_n and_o wine_n unto_o the_o disciple_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n it_o be_v also_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o apostolical_a constitution_n who_o make_v christ_n say_v of_o the_o bread_n which_o he_o break_v 12._o const_n apost_n lib._n 8._o c._n 12._o and_o give_v unto_o his_o disciple_n this_o be_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n take_v eat_v this_o be_v my_o body_n st._n chrysostome_n be_v no_o less_o clear_a 92._o chrysost_n in_o 1_o co._n hom._n 24._o hieron_n cp_n 4_o ad_fw-la hidib_n 92._o what_o be_v the_o bread_n say_v he_o it_o be_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ._n st._n jerome_n also_o follow_v the_o same_o way_n see_v he_o assure_v that_o the_o bread_n which_o our_o lord_n break_v and_o give_v unto_o his_o disciple_n be_v his_o body_n and_o the_o cup_n his_o blood_n and_o that_o he_o prove_v it_o by_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n st._n austin_n in_o the_o sermon_n unto_o the_o new_a baptize_v 27._o august_n apud_fw-la fulgen._n de_fw-fr baptis_n aeth_n cap._n vet_z cyril_n l._n 12._o in_o joar_n 20.26_o 27._o say_v express_o that_o the_o bread_n be_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o cup_n be_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n st._n cyrill_a of_o alexandria_n be_v doubtless_o of_o the_o same_o mind_n for_o in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o st._n john_n he_o make_v christ_n say_v of_o the_o bread_n which_o he_o break_v and_o distribute_v this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o in_o remission_n of_o sin_n we_o may_v descend_v low_a and_o carry_v further_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o first_o reflection_n be_v we_o not_o prevent_v by_o the_o rule_n which_o we_o prescribe_v and_o of_o the_o resolution_n take_v of_o avoid_v as_o much_o as_o possible_a may_v be_v the_o repeat_n of_o the_o same_o testimony_n it_o shall_v then_o suffice_v to_o inform_v the_o reader_n that_o it_o be_v a_o certain_a truth_n own_v by_o all_o man_n both_o protestant_n and_o roman_a catholic_n that_o when_o there_o be_v a_o dispute_n of_o two_o subject_n of_o a_o different_a nature_n it_o can_v proper_o be_v say_v that_o the_o one_o be_v the_o other_o when_o therefore_o these_o sort_n of_o proposition_n meet_v in_o discourse_n of_o necessity_n recours_fw-fr must_v be_v have_v unto_o the_o figure_n or_o metaphor_n what_o the_o father_n have_v depose_v be_v considerable_a yet_o i_o do_v not_o think_v it_o sufficient_a nor_o that_o it_o be_v all_o which_o they_o have_v to_o say_v unto_o we_o if_o we_o examine_v anew_o these_o faithful_a witness_n i_o doubt_v not_o but_o they_o will_v speak_v again_o and_o that_o they_o will_v inform_v we_o of_o other_o truth_n beside_o they_o abovementioned_a and_o that_o they_o will_v not_o leave_v we_o ignorant_a how_o they_o understand_v the_o word_n of_o the_o institution_n of_o this_o angust_n sacrament_n those_o which_o have_v diligent_o apply_v themselves_o to_o
devil_n by_o the_o eat_n of_o meat_n consecrate_v unto_o idol_n the_o author_n of_o the_o commentary_n of_o st._n paul_n epistle_n in_o st._n jerom_n work_n interpret_n these_o word_n the_o bread_n which_o we_o break_v etc._n etc._n make_v this_o observation_n cor._n apud_fw-la hieron_n in_o c._n 10.1_o cor._n in_o like_a manner_n it_o appear_v that_o the_o idolatrous_a bread_n be_v the_o participation_n of_o devil_n and_o upon_o these_o you_o can_v drink_v the_o cup_n of_o the_o lord_n and_o the_o cup_n of_o devil_n etc._n etc._n you_o can_v say_v he_o be_v partaker_n of_o god_n and_o of_o devil_n theodoret_n say_v something_o of_o this_o kind_n upon_o these_o word_n 3._o theod_n in_o c._n 10.1_o cor._n t._n 3._o you_o can_v be_v partaker_n of_o the_o lord_n table_n etc._n etc._n how_o say_v he_o can_v it_o be_v that_o we_o shall_v communicate_v of_o the_o lord_n by_o his_o precious_a body_n and_o blood_n and_o that_o we_o shall_v also_o communicate_v of_o devil_n in_o eat_v what_o have_v be_v offer_v unto_o idol_n it_o be_v also_o the_o language_n of_o primasius_n a_o african_a bishop_n patr._n primus_fw-la in_o c._n 10._o 1_o cor._n t._n 1_o bib._n patr._n who_o make_v these_o reflection_n upon_o the_o same_o word_n even_o so_o the_o bread_n of_o idol_n be_v the_o participation_n of_o devil_n you_o can_v have_v fellowship_n with_o god_n and_o devil_n ibid._n ibid._n because_o you_o will_v participate_v of_o both_o table_n sedulius_n speak_v almost_o the_o same_o the_o second_o doctrine_n which_o result_v from_o the_o hypothesis_n of_o the_o father_n be_v that_o consider_v that_o the_o death_n of_o christ_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o our_o life_n which_o life_n consist_v in_o the_o sanctification_n of_o our_o soul_n by_o mean_n whereof_o we_o have_v communion_n with_o god_n which_o be_v the_o lively_a fountain_n of_o life_n and_o therefore_o before_o conversion_n we_o be_v say_v to_o be_v dead_a they_o have_v attribute_v unto_o the_o sacrament_n the_o virtue_n of_o sanctify_v and_o quicken_a we_o this_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o theophilue_n of_o alexandria_n 2._o theoph._n ep._n pasch_fw-mi 2._o say_v that_o we_o break_v the_o bread_n of_o the_o lord_n for_o our_o sanctification_n hilary_n deacon_n of_o rome_n or_o the_o author_n of_o the_o commentary_n upon_o st._n paul_n epistle_n under_o the_o name_n of_o st._n ambrose_n be_v he_o who_o it_o will_v assure_v we_o cor_fw-la apud_fw-la ambros_n in_o c._n 11.1_o cor_fw-la that_o although_o this_o mystery_n be_v celebrate_v at_o supper_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o a_o supper_n but_o a_o spiritual_a medicine_n which_o purify_v those_o which_o draw_v near_o with_o devotion_n and_o which_o receive_v it_o with_o respect_n christ_n gelas_n de_fw-fr duab_n nat_n christ_n pope_n gelasius_n testify_v that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n render_v we_o partaker_n of_o the_o divine_a nature_n anaceph_n aug._n tract_n 27._o in_o joan._n in_o anaceph_n therefore_o st._n austin_n will_v have_v we_o to_o eat_v and_o drink_v of_o it_o for_o the_o participation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n therefore_o it_o be_v st._n epiphanius_n say_v that_o there_o be_v in_o the_o bread_n a_o virtue_n to_o vivify_v we_o which_o be_v that_o influence_n of_o life_n mention_v by_o st._n cyril_n chap._n iu._n a_o continuance_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n although_o the_o holy_a father_n have_v hitherto_o sufficient_o explain_v themselves_o and_o that_o they_o have_v full_o declare_v what_o be_v their_o belief_n touch_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o eucharist_n in_o say_v that_o it_o be_v true_a bread_n and_o true_a wine_n and_o that_o this_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v the_o sign_n the_o image_n and_o the_o figure_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n but_o sign_n accompany_v if_o it_o may_v be_v so_o say_v with_o the_o majesty_n of_o his_o own_o person_n and_o fill_v with_o the_o quicken_a virtue_n of_o his_o divine_a body_n break_v for_o we_o call_v his_o body_n and_o blood_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o resemblance_n because_o they_o be_v the_o symbol_n and_o sacrament_n the_o memorial_n of_o his_o person_n and_o of_o his_o death_n because_o they_o be_v unto_o we_o instead_o of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o pass_v into_o a_o sacrament_n of_o this_o holy_a body_n and_o precious_a blood_n and_o be_v change_v into_o their_o efficacy_n and_o virtue_n nevertheless_o if_o we_o can_v discover_v what_o be_v the_o consequence_n of_o this_o doctrine_n i_o doubt_v not_o but_o it_o will_v yet_o receive_v great_a illustration_n for_o as_o it_o be_v impossisible_a that_o they_o shall_v have_v believe_v the_o conversion_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n into_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n without_o admit_v the_o three_o follow_a doctrine_n to_o wit_n the_o eat_n of_o the_o flesh_n of_o christ_n with_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o body_n the_o eat_n of_o this_o same_o flesh_n by_o the_o wicked_a as_o well_o as_o the_o just_a and_o the_o human_a presence_n of_o christ_n upon_o earth_n so_o it_o be_v also_o impossible_a they_o shall_v deny_v these_o three_o position_n without_o reject_v this_o substantial_a conversion_n therefore_o i_o suppose_v it_o be_v necessary_a to_o inquire_v exact_o what_o they_o herein_o believe_v for_o if_o they_o have_v receive_v they_o as_o article_n of_o their_o belief_n it_o will_v be_v a_o great_a conjecture_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o substantial_a conversion_n notwithstanding_o what_o they_o have_v already_o declare_v but_o if_o on_o the_o other_o hand_n they_o have_v reject_v they_o or_o be_v far_o from_o admit_v of_o they_o it_o will_v be_v a_o very_a great_a conjecture_n to_o the_o contrary_a and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n a_o strong_a confirmation_n of_o what_o they_o have_v depose_v in_o the_o precedent_a chapter_n to_o begin_v then_o our_o enquiry_n by_o the_o first_o of_o these_o three_o point_n i_o mean_v by_o the_o eat_n of_o the_o flesh_n of_o jesus_n christ_n i_o say_v if_o we_o consult_v clement_n of_o alexandria_n we_o shall_v find_v he_o make_v a_o long_a discourse_n in_o the_o first_o book_n of_o his_o pedagogue_n and_o that_o in_o all_o that_o discourse_n he_o consider_v jesus_n christ_n either_o as_o the_o milk_n of_o child_n that_o be_v to_o say_v those_o which_o be_v child_n in_o knowledge_n or_o as_o the_o meat_n of_o firm_a grow_v man_n that_o be_v more_o advance_v in_o knowledge_n but_o always_o as_o a_o spiritual_a food_n and_o mystical_a nourishment_n which_o require_v to_o be_v eat_v after_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o appear_v by_o what_o he_o say_v of_o the_o birth_n and_o regeneration_n of_o the_o new_a people_n of_o the_o swadling-cloth_n wherein_o he_o wrap_v they_o of_o the_o growth_n for_o which_o he_o appoint_v they_o this_o food_n and_o in_o that_o he_o make_v our_o heart_n to_o be_v the_o palace_n and_o temple_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n hereunto_o particular_o relate_v what_o he_o say_v that_o the_o lord_n in_o these_o word_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o st._n john_n ibid._n clem._n alex._n paedag._n 1_o c_o 6._o id._n ibid._n eat_v my_o flesh_n and_o drink_v my_o blood_n speak_v of_o faith_n and_o of_o the_o promise_n by_o a_o illustrious_a allegory_n as_o by_o meat_n whereby_o the_o church_n which_o be_v compose_v of_o many_o member_n be_v nourish_v and_o get_v growth_n and_o what_o he_o add_v afterward_o the_o milk_n fit_a and_o necessary_a for_o this_o child_n be_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n ibid._n id._n ibid._n which_o by_o the_o word_n do_v feed_v the_o new_a people_n who_o our_o lord_n himself_o have_v beget_v with_o bodily_a pang_n and_o wrap_v as_o young_a infant_n in_o his_o precious_a blood_n and_o in_o fine_a this_o pious_a and_o excellent_a exclamation_n o_o wonderful_a mystery_n ibid._n id._n ibid._n it_o command_v we_o to_o put_v off_o the_o old_a and_o carnal_a corruption_n as_o also_o the_o old_a nourishment_n to_o the_o end_n that_o lead_v a_o new_a life_n which_o be_v that_o of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o that_o receive_v he_o into_o we_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a we_o shall_v lay_v he_o up_o in_o we_o and_o lodge_v the_o saviour_n in_o our_o heart_n and_o elsewhere_o he_o say_v that_o it_o be_v to_o drink_v the_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o be_v partaker_n of_o the_o incorruption_n of_o our_o lord_n which_o he_o attribute_n to_o the_o enter_v of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n into_o our_o heart_n resurrect_a tertul._n the_o resurrect_a tertullian_n also_o speak_v yet_o more_o clear_o explain_v figurative_o and_o metaphorical_o all_o that_o excellent_a discourse_n which_o we_o read_v in_o the_o six_o of_o st._n john_n where_o our_o saviour_n speak_v of_o eat_v his_o flesh_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n although_o say_v he_o our_o saviour_n say_v that_o the_o flesh_n profit_v nothing_o the_o mean_v
promotion_n to_o the_o episcopacy_n with_o any_o secular_a oath_n whatever_o it_o do_v before_o ordination_n in_o the_o first_o place_n i_o advertise_v the_o reader_n there_o be_v in_o the_o text_n conficit_fw-la corpus_fw-la &_o christi_fw-la sanguinis_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la but_o it_o may_v plain_o be_v see_v it_o shall_v be_v read_v corporis_fw-la &_o christi_fw-la sanguinis_fw-la sacramentum_fw-la and_o translate_v as_o we_o have_v do_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n otherwise_o it_o will_v be_v nonsense_n for_o what_o signify_v make_v the_o body_n and_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n from_o all_o which_o they_o conclude_v that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n shall_v have_v speak_v in_o much_o strong_a term_n if_o that_o instead_o of_o say_v that_o they_o make_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n they_o have_v say_v that_o they_o make_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n they_o think_v that_o the_o occasion_n also_o require_v it_o and_o that_o their_o denial_n will_v have_v be_v better_o ground_v and_o they_o affirm_v that_o if_o a_o assembly_n of_o prelate_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n be_v in_o the_o like_a conjuncture_n they_o will_v make_v no_o mention_n and_o that_o just_o of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n they_o will_v speak_v direct_o of_o the_o glorious_a privilege_n of_o make_v the_o real_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n whence_o be_v it_o then_o that_o these_o prelate_n of_o the_o synod_n of_o cressy_n do_v not_o do_v so_o it_o be_v in_o all_o likelihood_n because_o they_o be_v not_o of_o the_o same_o belief_n optatus_n bishop_n of_o mileva_n in_o numidia_n aggravate_v the_o crime_n of_o the_o donatist_n which_o have_v with_o horrible_a impiety_n throw_v down_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o orthodox_n unto_o the_o dog_n speak_v of_o it_o after_o a_o manner_n which_o will_v not_o be_v easy_o pardon_v have_v he_o believe_v as_o the_o latin_n do_v that_o it_o be_v the_o very_a body_n of_o christ_n himself_n what_o say_v he_o be_v there_o more_o sinful_a and_o impious_a than_o to_o throw_v the_o eucharist_n unto_o beast_n but_o what_o can_v be_v weak_a than_o this_o expression_n if_o this_o eucharist_n be_v the_o real_a body_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n aught_o he_o not_o to_o have_v thunder_v after_o another_o manner_n against_o these_o wicked_a wretch_n shall_v he_o not_o have_v exaggerated_a with_o strong_a and_o more_o emphatical_a term_n the_o horror_n of_o so_o fearful_a a_o abomination_n in_o a_o word_n ought_v he_o not_o have_v give_v it_o a_o black_a term_n than_o that_o of_o impious_a and_o have_v paint_v the_o enormous_a sin_n of_o these_o wicked_a wretch_n with_o other_o colour_n can_v it_o be_v think_v that_o a_o bishop_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n shall_v be_v content_v with_o such_o a_o kind_n of_o expression_n in_o the_o like_a occasion_n not_o at_o all_o wherefore_o then_o be_v optatus_n content_a they_o can_v conceive_v no_o other_o reason_n but_o the_o difference_n of_o their_o belief_n let_v the_o reader_n judge_n if_o there_o be_v any_o other_o more_o probable_a in_o the_o mean_a while_o i_o must_v tell_v you_o that_o have_v sometime_o meditate_a of_o st._n chrysostom_n book_n touch_v the_o evangelical_n priesthood_n to_o see_v how_o he_o advance_v its_o dignity_n and_o have_v apply_v myself_o in_o read_v they_o to_o endeavour_v to_o discover_v wherein_o he_o make_v the_o great_a privilege_n of_o this_o order_n to_o consist_v which_o with_o his_o eloquence_n he_o exalt_v as_o much_o as_o he_o think_v fit_a i_o find_v that_o he_o only_o attribute_n unto_o it_o the_o function_n of_o prayer_n to_o obtain_v by_o their_o prayer_n the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n upon_o the_o sacrament_n 31._o chrysost_n l._n 3._o de_fw-fr sacerdot_n c._n 4_o p._n 32._o vid._n p._n 31._o the_o priest_n say_v he_o be_v present_a not_o bear_v fire_n but_o the_o holy_a ghost_n he_o make_v long_a prayer_n not_o to_o the_o end_n that_o fire_n shall_v come_v down_o from_o heaven_n to_o burn_v the_o thing_n offer_v but_o to_o the_o end_n that_o grace_n descend_v upon_o the_o sacrifice_n shall_v by_o that_o mean_n inflame_v the_o spirit_n of_o those_o which_o be_v present_a and_o make_v they_o pure_a and_o more_o bright_a than_o silver_n try_v in_o the_o fire_n and_o he_o say_v this_o in_o opposition_n to_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o prophet_n elias_n 18._o 1_o reg._n 18._o when_o he_o assemble_v all_o the_o prophet_n of_o baal_n to_o prefer_v the_o evangelical_n priesthood_n 18._o 1_o reg._n 18._o and_o what_o be_v do_v in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n much_o before_o and_o above_o the_o priesthood_n of_o the_o law_n how_o be_v it_o that_o this_o excellent_a genius_n have_v not_o bethink_v himself_o of_o say_v that_o though_o the_o mystical_a sacrificer_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n do_v not_o cause_n to_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n a_o material_a fire_n by_o their_o prayer_n as_o elias_n do_v to_o consume_v the_o oblation_n offer_v upon_o the_o holy_a table_n but_o the_o heavenly_a and_o divine_a fire_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o the_o purify_n of_o our_o soul_n they_o do_v make_v moreover_o the_o true_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n by_o the_o force_n and_o virtue_n of_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n be_v there_o ever_o a_o more_o proper_a and_o favourable_a mean_n and_o occasion_n to_o advance_v this_o evangelical_n dignity_n and_o to_o place_v what_o it_o do_v daily_o do_v in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n by_o convert_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n into_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v infinite_o more_o than_o what_o elias_n do_v against_o baal_n false_a prophet_n every_o body_n know_v in_o what_o manner_n the_o romish_a catholic_n doctor_n do_v exalt_v this_o dignity_n and_o that_o they_o never_o forget_v when_o they_o treat_v of_o its_o advantage_n and_o privilege_n to_o attribute_v unto_o their_o priest_n the_o privilege_n of_o make_v the_o real_a body_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o i_o do_v wonder_v any_o body_n shall_v think_v strange_a of_o it_o if_o they_o consider_v the_o doctrine_n and_o belief_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n how_o be_v it_o possible_a then_o that_o the_o great_a st._n chrysostom_n shall_v have_v forget_v it_o that_o he_o have_v not_o say_v a_o word_n of_o it_o and_o that_o in_o so_o prese_v a_o occasion_n he_o pass_v over_o in_o silence_n a_o circumstance_n so_o remarkable_a and_o essential_a to_o his_o subject_n man_n may_v say_v what_o they_o please_v but_o for_o my_o part_n say_v the_o protestant_n i_o find_v no_o other_o reason_n for_o it_o but_o their_o difference_n of_o belief_n st._n austin_n in_o his_o book_n against_o faustus_n the_o manichean_a undertake_v to_o advance_v the_o honour_n and_o excellency_n of_o our_o sacrament_n above_o the_o ancient_a sacrament_n so_o far_o as_o to_o exhort_v we_o to_o suffer_v for_o they_o with_o more_o vigour_n and_o courage_n than_o the_o three_o hebrew_n child_n or_o daniel_n and_o the_o maccabee_n do_v for_o they_o content_v himself_o to_o say_v 14._o august_n l._n 19_o contra_fw-la faust_n c._n 14._o that_o it_o be_v the_o eucharist_n of_o jesus_n christ_n the_o sign_n of_o thing_n accomplish_v whereas_o the_o ancient_a sacrament_n be_v promise_n of_o thing_n to_o come_v have_v he_o believe_v that_o our_o eucharist_n be_v not_o a_o sacrament_n only_o but_o also_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o his_o flesh_n also_o wherefore_o do_v he_o conceal_v and_o be_v silent_a in_o this_o essential_a difference_n from_o the_o old_a sacrament_n because_o his_o reputation_n alone_o have_v be_v sufficient_o capable_a of_o inflame_v our_o zeal_n and_o of_o more_o effectual_o dispose_v we_o unto_o martyrdom_n for_o its_o defence_n rather_o than_o any_o thing_n else_o which_o he_o say_v unto_o we_o when_o we_o censure_v we_o endeavour_v to_o represent_v to_o the_o offender_n the_o greatness_n of_o his_o fault_n to_o make_v he_o the_o more_o to_o loathe_v it_o and_o all_o mean_n be_v use_v to_o let_v he_o see_v the_o enormity_n of_o it_o especial_o in_o raise_v and_o advance_v the_o excellency_n of_o the_o object_n which_o he_o offend_v for_o it_o be_v common_o according_a to_o the_o nature_n and_o quality_n of_o the_o object_n offend_v that_o the_o degree_n and_o greatness_n of_o the_o offence_n be_v proportion_v let_v we_o then_o see_v after_o what_o manner_n the_o holy_a father_n have_v demean_v themselves_o towards_o they_o which_o have_v offend_v against_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n for_o doubtless_o considerable_a information_n may_v be_v draw_v from_o these_o kind_n of_o censure_n a_o council_n of_o carthage_n assemble_v anno_fw-la 419._o
any_o magic_a or_o enchantment_n do_v what_o he_o pretend_v to_o do_v by_o the_o help_n of_o his_o sorcery_n in_o cast_v a_o mist_n before_o the_o eye_n of_o those_o that_o be_v present_a and_o that_o by_o pronounce_v of_o these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n they_o change_v the_o wine_n of_o the_o cup_n into_o the_o very_a blood_n of_o the_o god_n which_o they_o adore_v nevertheless_o st._n irencus_fw-la nor_o st._n epiphanius_n which_o have_v narrow_o enough_o examine_v the_o heresy_n of_o this_o deceiver_n and_o all_o that_o he_o do_v in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o mystery_n nor_o any_o one_o else_o that_o i_o hear_v of_o have_v not_o make_v he_o this_o objection_n to_o expose_v unto_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n the_o folly_n of_o his_o enterprise_n which_o show_v as_o the_o protestant_n say_v that_o the_o orthodox_n christian_n do_v not_o then_o believe_v that_o what_o be_v in_o the_o consecrate_a cup_n be_v the_o real_a blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o same_o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o part_n we_o mention_v the_o ascodrute_n or_o ascodrupite_n which_o reject_v both_o baptism_n and_o the_o eucharist_n say_v that_o invisible_a thing_n shall_v not_o be_v represent_v by_o visible_a thing_n nor_o incorporeal_a thing_n by_o sensible_a and_o corporal_a and_o that_o image_n and_o figure_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v make_v upon_o earth_n how_o can_v the_o holy_a father_n grapple_v with_o these_o heretic_n or_o condemn_v as_o a_o heresy_n that_o which_o they_o teach_v that_o the_o symbol_n of_o spiritual_a and_o heavenly_a thing_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v sensible_a nor_o corporal_a if_o catholic_n have_v not_o in_o their_o sacrament_n symbol_n of_o this_o nature_n for_o it_o will_v have_v be_v unjust_a to_o condemn_v that_o for_o a_o heresy_n in_o other_o which_o we_o believe_v and_o approve_v ourselves_o or_o how_o shall_v these_o heretic_n have_v abstain_v from_o the_o celebration_n of_o baptism_n and_o the_o eucharist_n if_o the_o orthodox_n have_v believe_v with_o they_o that_o there_o be_v nothing_o sensible_a nor_o corporal_a in_o the_o one_o nor_o the_o other_o of_o these_o two_o sacrament_n for_o what_o make_v they_o lay_v aside_o these_o sacrament_n be_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o symbol_n which_o be_v corporal_a and_o visible_a and_o as_o the_o same_o reason_n which_o make_v they_o deny_v baptism_n make_v they_o also_o reject_v the_o celebration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n this_o be_v the_o reason_n that_o they_o do_v not_o find_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n of_o this_o sacrament_n no_o less_o visible_a and_o corporal_a than_o the_o water_n of_o the_o other_o so_o that_o the_o holy_a father_n oppose_v their_o heresy_n refute_v it_o alike_o both_o for_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o sacrament_n and_o in_o dispute_v against_o it_o they_o own_o that_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o symbol_n be_v sensible_a and_o visible_a in_o both_o for_o in_o this_o respect_n they_o make_v no_o distinction_n betwixt_o baptism_n and_o the_o eucharist_n this_o be_v the_o conclusion_n of_o the_o protestant_n as_o touch_v the_o silence_n of_o heretic_n it_o be_v almost_o of_o the_o same_o force_n with_o that_o of_o the_o gentile_n because_o the_o same_o truth_n which_o be_v the_o object_n of_o the_o scorn_n and_o contempt_n of_o pagan_n be_v also_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o slander_n and_o contradiction_n of_o heretic_n some_o whereof_o deny_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o human_a nature_n of_o jesus_n christ_n as_o martion_n and_o several_a other_o which_o attribute_v unto_o he_o a_o imaginary_a body_n a_o shadow_n and_o figure_n of_o a_o body_n teach_v that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n do_v not_o become_v man_n and_o that_o he_o manifest_v himself_o unto_o man_n only_o in_o a_o false_a shape_n not_o have_v a_o true_a body_n but_o one_o in_o show_v other_o have_v deny_v his_o divinity_n as_o ebion_n cerinthus_n artemon_n and_o other_o which_o maintain_v that_o our_o jesus_n be_v not_o god_n but_o man_n only_o and_o that_o he_o do_v not_o begin_v to_o be_v but_o when_o he_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o holy_a virgin_n two_o mystery_n which_o we_o have_v see_v whereof_o the_o jew_n and_o pagan_n both_o make_v light_n the_o cross_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v the_o stumble_a block_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o the_o scorn_n of_o the_o heathen_a be_v also_o contradict_v by_o heretic_n who_o be_v not_o ashamed_a to_o say_v that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v not_o true_o suffer_v but_o that_o he_o either_o put_v another_o man_n in_o his_o stead_n or_o avoid_v the_o fury_n of_o those_o which_o crucify_v he_o by_o this_o seem_a body_n wherewith_o they_o say_v he_o be_v invest_v *_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n which_o be_v esteem_v a_o story_n and_o fable_n by_o the_o gentile_n also_o offend_v exceed_o some_o heretic_n as_o the_o gnostic_n the_o marcionite_n and_o some_o other_o and_o to_o speak_v in_o a_o word_n there_o be_v scarce_o any_o one_o article_n of_o our_o faith_n which_o in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o christianity_n be_v not_o traverse_v by_o some_o heresy_n or_o that_o meet_v not_o with_o some_o contradiction_n among_o christian_n themselves_o what_o likelihood_n then_o say_v they_o be_v there_o that_o if_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o substantial_a conversion_n and_o all_o the_o consequence_n which_o necessary_o depend_v of_o it_o have_v be_v teach_v by_o christian_n and_o receive_v into_o the_o article_n of_o their_o faith_n but_o it_o will_v have_v receive_v some_o attempt_n by_o heretic_n who_o not_o have_v disow_v the_o use_n of_o their_o sense_n nor_o of_o their_o reason_n can_v not_o choose_v as_o they_o think_v but_o have_v dispute_v against_o they_o especial_o when_o they_o shall_v have_v consider_v that_o they_o will_v have_v deny_v the_o testimony_n of_o their_o sense_n and_o the_o clear_a light_n of_o their_o reason_n nevertheless_o we_o can_v find_v in_o any_o monument_n of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n of_o the_o church_n that_o the_o heretic_n ever_o contest_v with_o the_o catholic_n and_o orthodox_n upon_o the_o point_n of_o the_o eucharist_n it_o be_v indeed_o true_a that_o some_o reject_v the_o celebration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n though_o upon_o different_a motive_n but_o that_o they_o charge_v the_o church_n touch_v the_o substantial_a conversion_n of_o the_o symbol_n of_o the_o eucharist_n into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n there_o be_v not_o one_o to_o be_v find_v especial_o of_o those_o which_o have_v own_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o human_a nature_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n at_o least_o no_o such_o thing_n be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o their_o write_n nor_o in_o the_o divers_a catalogue_n of_o heresy_n that_o still_o remain_v nor_o in_o the_o polemical_a write_n of_o the_o holy_a doctor_n against_o heretic_n for_o as_o for_o those_o mention_v by_o the_o author_n of_o the_o letter_n unto_o those_o of_o smyrna_n under_o the_o name_n of_o st._n ignatius_n of_o who_o we_o have_v speak_v in_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o the_o first_o part_n beside_o it_o be_v very_o uncertain_a if_o there_o be_v ever_o any_o such_o they_o deny_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o incarnation_n and_o do_v not_o confess_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o humanity_n of_o jesus_n christ_n they_o reject_v the_o sacrament_n the_o celebration_n whereof_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o confess_v and_o own_v the_o truth_n of_o his_o human_a nature_n but_o neither_o they_o nor_o any_o other_o have_v complain_v against_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o church_n upon_o the_o subject_n of_o the_o sacrament_n they_o have_v not_o arm_v against_o she_o nor_o have_v separate_v from_o her_o communion_n upon_o account_n of_o this_o divine_a mystery_n neither_o do_v the_o church_n ever_o thunder_v out_o anathema_n nor_o excommunication_n upon_o this_o subject_a from_o whence_o say_v some_o proceed_v so_o universal_a a_o silence_n and_o so_o great_a tranquillity_n upon_o so_o important_a a_o article_n which_o since_o paschas_fw-la his_o time_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o ixth_o century_n have_v suffer_v such_o a_o infinite_a number_n of_o contradiction_n in_o the_o west_n for_o this_o friar_n of_o corby_n no_o soon_o publish_v his_o opinion_n but_o there_o oppose_v against_o he_o all_o the_o learned_a man_n of_o that_o age_n and_o it_o will_v appear_v in_o the_o course_n of_o this_o treatise_n that_o ever_o since_o that_o time_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n have_v never_o be_v without_o a_o great_a many_o opposer_n and_o adversary_n which_o for_o that_o reason_n have_v be_v excommunicate_v and_o esteem_v heretic_n by_o the_o latin_a church_n when_o i_o make_v this_o reflection_n in_o myself_o say_v the_o protestant_n that_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n have_v be_v at_o all_o time_n much_o of_o one_o and_o the_o same_o temper_n and_o be_v ever_o almost_o of_o the_o same_o disposition_n and_o that_o beside_o the_o
liberty_n of_o writing_n and_o speak_v against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n be_v never_o great_a than_o in_o the_o first_o age_n of_o christianity_n nor_o less_o in_o the_o west_n than_o since_o the_o condemnation_n of_o beranger_n i_o can_v find_v no_o other_o cause_n of_o so_o various_a and_o different_a proceed_n but_o the_o difference_n of_o doctrine_n which_o until_o paschas_fw-la his_o time_n be_v such_o that_o no_o body_n have_v reason_n to_o take_v up_o arm_n to_o dispute_v against_o it_o whereas_o ever_o since_o the_o establish_n of_o his_o opinion_n which_o alter_v the_o ancient_a belief_n there_o have_v be_v make_v continual_a resistance_n and_o opposition_n now_o i_o come_v to_o the_o dispute_n which_o the_o ancient_a father_n have_v have_v against_o heretic_n wherein_o they_o have_v employ_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o eucharist_n the_o first_o which_o trouble_v the_o settlement_n of_o christianity_n be_v the_o saturnian_o the_o menandrian_o valentinian_o marcionite_n and_o other_o i_o intend_v not_o to_o burden_v my_o paper_n with_o all_o the_o impiety_n of_o these_o wretch_n but_o only_o to_o represent_v those_o against_o which_o the_o holy_a doctor_n have_v make_v use_n of_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n and_o in_o what_o manner_n they_o have_v do_v it_o i_o find_v then_o there_o be_v three_o horrible_a impiety_n hold_v by_o these_o extravagant_a person_n against_o which_o they_o employ_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n by_o the_o first_o they_o teach_v that_o jesus_n christ_n have_v not_o a_o true_a human_a body_n but_o a_o shadow_n of_o a_o body_n and_o a_o mere_a form_n void_a of_o substance_n or_o solidity_n by_o the_o second_o they_o say_v that_o the_o father_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v not_o the_o creator_n of_o the_o world_n but_o that_o the_o world_n and_o all_o creature_n which_o we_o see_v in_o it_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o passion_n of_o nature_n and_o of_o ignorance_n and_o not_o of_o the_o father_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o by_o the_o three_o in_o fine_a they_o say_v that_o all_o these_o material_a creature_n shall_v be_v whole_o destroy_v and_o that_o by_o consequence_n our_o body_n be_v of_o the_o number_n of_o these_o creature_n shall_v not_o be_v raise_v be_v uncapable_a of_o receive_v supernatural_a incorruption_n nor_o of_o participate_v of_o the_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a spirit_n flesh_n and_o spirit_n not_o subsist_v both_o together_o the_o holy_a father_n do_v allege_v the_o eucharist_n to_o refute_v the_o first_o of_o these_o impiety_n but_o it_o be_v requisite_a to_o know_v how_o they_o do_v allege_v it_o for_o if_o they_o have_v be_v in_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n they_o will_v not_o have_v fail_v as_o the_o protestant_n say_v to_o have_v tell_v these_o heretic_n that_o they_o overthrow_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o hold_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v turn_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o can_v not_o be_v if_o he_o have_v not_o a_o true_a body_n they_o suppose_v this_o will_v have_v be_v the_o only_a mean_n to_o have_v refute_v they_o and_o they_o think_v the_o latin_n will_v have_v use_v this_o course_n have_v they_o to_o do_v with_o such_o heretic_n they_o say_v also_o that_o the_o argument_n will_v have_v be_v clear_a and_o convince_a and_o that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v the_o ancient_a doctor_n will_v not_o have_v follow_v any_o other_o course_n if_o they_o have_v be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n that_o yet_o nevertheless_o they_o do_v not_o argue_v after_o that_o manner_n to_o refute_v the_o first_o error_n of_o these_o instrument_n of_o satan_n they_o only_o tell_v they_o that_o see_v the_o eucharist_n be_v the_o image_n and_o figure_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n then_o of_o necessity_n he_o have_v a_o true_a body_n because_o every_o image_n and_o figure_n do_v presuppose_v the_o existence_n and_o truth_n of_o the_o thing_n that_o it_o represent_v and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o reason_n of_o tertullian_n in_o his_o excellent_a treatise_n against_o martion_n 40._o tertul._n adyer_n marc._n l._n 4._o c._n 40._o jesus_n christ_n say_v he_o make_v the_o bread_n his_o body_n say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n now_o it_o have_v not_o be_v a_o figure_n if_o there_o have_v not_o be_v a_o true_a body_n for_o a_o shadow_n and_o empty_a appearance_n such_o as_o be_v a_o spirit_n be_v not_o capable_a of_o have_v a_o figure_n the_o author_n of_o the_o dialogue_n against_o the_o marcionite_n in_o origen_n work_v reason_v after_o the_o same_o manner_n 3_o author_n dial_n contra_fw-la marc._n inter_fw-la orig_n open_a dial._n 3_o if_o jesus_n christ_n say_v he_o have_v neither_o flesh_n nor_o blood_n as_o the_o marcionite_n affirm_v of_o what_o flesh_n and_o blood_n be_v it_o that_o he_o have_v give_v we_o the_o image_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n when_o he_o command_v his_o disciple_n to_o remember_v he_o by_o those_o thing_n against_o the_o second_o impiety_n they_o also_o imply_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n and_o see_v here_o how_o they_o do_v it_o 34._o tren_n contr_n heres_fw-la l._n 4._o c._n 34._o they_o say_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n be_v a_o acknowledgement_n which_o we_o make_v unto_o god_n under_o the_o title_n of_o creator_n in_o offer_v unto_o he_o the_o first_o fruit_n of_o the_o creature_n which_o he_o have_v make_v and_o that_o it_o be_v a_o injustice_n to_o the_o father_n of_o jesus_n christ_n if_o he_o be_v not_o the_o creator_n of_o the_o world_n to_o offer_v unto_o he_o thing_n which_o belong_v not_o unto_o he_o as_o if_o he_o covet_v that_o which_o belong_v to_o another_o and_o desire_v to_o have_v what_o be_v not_o his_o own_o that_o if_o the_o creature_n be_v the_o product_n of_o passion_n of_o nature_n and_o of_o ignorance_n it_o be_v to_o wrong_v god_n instead_o of_o give_v he_o thanks_o to_o offer_v he_o the_o fruit_n of_o passion_n of_o nature_n and_o of_o ignorance_n it_o be_v after_o this_o manner_n st._n ireneus_fw-la do_v argue_v to_o confute_v the_o adversary_n which_o he_o oppose_v in_o show_v they_o that_o the_o father_n of_o jesus_n christ_n must_v needs_o be_v the_o creator_n of_o the_o world_n because_o he_o accept_v the_o oblation_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o be_v make_v unto_o he_o in_o the_o eucharist_n for_o to_o say_v that_o it_o be_v no_o long_a bread_n and_o wine_n after_o consecration_n but_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o that_o it_o be_v so_o st._n ireneus_fw-la understand_v it_o the_o protestant_n say_v this_o will_v have_v be_v yield_v the_o cause_n unto_o these_o heretic_n who_o teach_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v not_o of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o creature_n of_o this_o world_n will_v not_o have_v fail_v to_o have_v infer_v that_o his_o father_n have_v not_o be_v the_o creator_n because_o our_o lord_n be_v offer_v unto_o he_o which_o be_v not_o the_o work_n of_o the_o creator_n whereas_o in_o say_v that_o there_o be_v offer_v unto_o he_o creature_n of_o this_o world_n as_o these_o heretic_n own_v as_o well_o as_o the_o orthodox_n that_o there_o be_v such_o offer_v unto_o he_o in_o the_o eucharist_n he_o will_v have_v put_v they_o to_o silence_n all_o the_o shift_n they_o can_v have_v make_v will_v have_v vanish_v away_o at_o the_o sight_n of_o this_o truth_n because_o they_o confess_v that_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v of_o those_o creature_n whereof_o the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n will_v not_o have_v receive_v a_o oblation_n if_o he_o have_v not_o be_v the_o maker_n of_o they_o something_o of_o this_o nature_n be_v see_v in_o tertullian_n first_o book_n against_o martion_n chap._n 14._o it_o remain_v to_o see_v after_o what_o manner_n the_o father_n have_v act_v to_o refute_v the_o last_o impiety_n of_o these_o heretic_n who_o deny_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o body_n maintain_v that_o all_o material_a creature_n shall_v be_v whole_o destroy_v and_o reduce_v to_o nothing_o 34._o iren._n advers._fw-la haeres_fw-la l_o 4._o c._n 34._o and_o that_o the_o flesh_n be_v uncapable_a of_o receive_v incorruption_n because_o incorruption_n be_v a_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n which_o can_v have_v no_o commerce_n nor_o society_n with_o the_o flesh_n we_o preach_v in_o the_o eucharist_n say_v st._n ireneus_fw-la the_o communion_n and_o unity_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o spirit_n for_o as_o the_o bread_n which_o be_v of_o the_o earth_n receive_v the_o invocation_n of_o god_n be_v no_o long_o common_a bread_n but_o be_v the_o sacrament_n compose_v of_o two_o thing_n the_o one_o terrestrial_a the_o other_o celestial_a so_o also_o our_o body_n receive_v the_o eucharist_n be_v no_o more_o corruptible_a
not_o that_o be_v to_o say_v 17._o id._n cap._n 17._o that_o the_o mystery_n of_o our_o redemption_n be_v true_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o we_o shall_v find_v say_v the_o protestant_n that_o he_o so_o explain_v himself_o in_o regard_n to_o their_o efficacy_n and_o their_o virtue_n and_o of_o the_o real_a and_o effectual_a communication_n of_o this_o body_n and_o blood_n in_o the_o lawful_a use_n of_o this_o sacrament_n and_o not_o to_o say_v that_o they_o be_v substantial_o this_o body_n and_o blood_n because_o that_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o the_o declaration_n he_o make_v just_a before_o that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n whereas_o these_o thing_n accord_v very_o well_o with_o say_v that_o although_o the_o sacrament_n be_v bread_n and_o wine_n in_o substance_n yet_o they_o be_v for_o all_o that_o true_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o efficacy_n and_o in_o virtue_n because_o they_o be_v indeed_o accompany_v with_o the_o virtue_n and_o efficacy_n of_o his_o divine_a body_n and_o of_o his_o precious_a blood_n the_o term_n of_o true_o be_v oppose_v not_o unto_o figurative_o or_o sacramental_o for_o that_o will_v be_v a_o contradiction_n see_v he_o speak_v of_o mystery_n but_o it_o be_v oppose_v unto_o untruth_n as_o if_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o at_o all_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n unto_o vain_o as_o if_o it_o have_v only_o the_o bare_a name_n and_o nefficacious_o as_o if_o it_o have_v not_o the_o virtue_n and_o that_o this_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n of_o wallafridus_n it_o appear_v by_o the_o title_n of_o the_o chapter_n entitle_v of_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o which_o chapter_n the_o more_o to_o advance_v the_o efficacy_n he_o with_o many_o of_o the_o ancient_n particular_o with_o rabanus_n his_o master_n and_o with_o ratramn_v his_o contemporary_a interpret_v the_o 6_o of_o st._n john_n not_o of_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n itself_o of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n or_o to_o speak_v with_o st._n fulgentius_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o truth_n aethiop_n fulgent_n de_fw-fr bapt._n aethiop_n and_o not_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o mystery_n this_o be_v the_o reason_v of_o protestant_n at_o the_o same_o time_n time_n that_o wallafridus_n write_v his_o book_n heribald_n or_o heribold_n bishop_n of_o auxerr_n be_v in_o great_a reputation_n but_o because_o we_o have_v that_o to_o say_v of_o this_o prelate_n as_o will_v give_v a_o very_a great_a weight_n unto_o his_o testimony_n we_o will_v reserve_v he_o for_o a_o chapter_n unto_o himself_o and_o in_o the_o mean_a while_o we_o will_v say_v something_o of_o loup_n abbot_n of_o ferrier_n in_o gastinais_n who_o in_o that_o he_o speak_v horable_o of_o heribold_n as_o shall_v be_v relate_v hereafter_o may_v intimate_v that_o they_o be_v both_o of_o one_o judgement_n but_o these_o sort_n of_o inference_n be_v too_o weak_a to_o be_v insist_v upon_o therefore_o i_o will_v seek_v for_o something_o in_o his_o write_n that_o be_v more_o material_a as_o in_o one_o of_o his_o letter_n unto_o amulus_fw-la or_o amulo_fw-la archbishop_n of_o lion_n in_o behalf_n of_o guenilo_n archbishop_n of_o sans_o and_o of_o count_n gerrard_n in_o speak_v of_o jesus_n christ_n 40._o lupus_fw-la ferrati●n_n ep._n 81._o id._n ep._n 40._o he_o say_v that_o he_o raise_v his_o humanity_n unto_o heaven_n to_o be_v always_o present_a with_o he_o by_o his_o divinity_n this_o that_o he_o call_v rabanus_n his_o tutor_n and_o render_v he_o thanks_o for_o that_o he_o take_v care_n of_o instruct_v he_o do_v no_o less_o confirm_v what_o he_o say_v and_o give_v cause_n to_o think_v that_o in_o all_o likelihood_n rabanus_n have_v instill_v his_o opinion_n into_o he_o because_o most_o common_o we_o embrace_v their_o opinion_n who_o disciple_n we_o have_v be_v in_o our_o youth_n especial_o when_o they_o be_v opinion_n receive_v by_o the_o major_a part_n of_o the_o world_n unto_o which_o may_v be_v add_v what_o he_o say_v in_o the_o book_n of_o three_o question_n edit_fw-la id._n de_fw-fr tribus_fw-la quaest_n p._n 208_o 209._o ult_n edit_fw-la which_o mounseur_fw-fr baluze_n prove_v to_o be_v his_o to_o wit_n that_o god_n have_v subject_v spiritual_a creature_n unto_o time_n only_o but_o as_o for_o bodily_a thing_n he_o have_v subject_v they_o unto_o time_n and_o unto_o place_n and_o that_o it_o can_v be_v question_v if_o it_o be_v consider_v that_o all_o body_n that_o have_v length_n breadth_n and_o depth_n and_o which_o be_v call_v solid_a be_v never_o contain_v but_o in_o one_o place_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o he_o mean_v of_o be_v contain_v circumscriptive_o otherwise_o his_o opposition_n will_v be_v insignificant_a be_v certain_a that_o spirit_n for_o instance_n angel_n also_o fill_v a_o place_n so_o that_o whilst_o they_o be_v here_o they_o be_v not_o there_o and_o this_o be_v term_v to_o be_v in_o a_o place_n definitive_o but_o to_o be_v there_o circumscriptive_o appertain_v only_o unto_o body_n which_o be_v make_v up_o of_o several_a part_n be_v in_o such_o manner_n situate_v in_o the_o place_n which_o they_o fill_v that_o each_o part_n of_o the_o body_n answer_v unto_o each_o part_n of_o the_o place_n 3._o st._n fulgent_n ad_fw-la pet._n diac._n c._n 3._o it_o not_o be_v give_v unto_o body_n to_o exist_v after_o the_o manner_n of_o spirit_n to_o use_v the_o term_n of_o st._n fulgentius_n see_v then_o that_o the_o abbot_n de_fw-fr ferrier_n speak_v after_o this_o manner_n of_o the_o exi_n of_o body_n and_o that_o he_o believe_v it_o inseparable_a from_o every_o corporal_a creature_n without_o except_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n it_o follow_v that_o he_o believe_v not_o this_o existence_n after_o the_o manner_n of_o a_o spirit_n which_o be_v attribute_v unto_o he_o in_o the_o latin_a church_n nor_o by_o consequence_n the_o real_a presence_n whereupon_o it_o depend_v as_o one_o of_o its_o necessary_a consequence_n this_o be_v what_o several_a do_v infer_v from_o this_o passage_n the_o emperor_n charles_n the_o bald_a be_v inform_v that_o his_o subject_n be_v not_o all_o of_o one_o opinion_n touch_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n think_v it_o necessary_a to_o consult_v some_o of_o the_o most_o learned_a of_o his_o kingdom_n and_o such_o as_o be_v of_o great_a credit_n and_o esteem_n among_o other_o which_o he_o make_v choice_n of_o to_o write_v on_o this_o subject_a he_o choose_v two_o person_n who_o he_o esteem_v very_o much_o the_o one_o be_v bertram_n or_o as_o he_o be_v call_v by_o the_o writer_n of_o that_o age_n ratramn_v which_o be_v his_o true_a name_n and_o the_o other_o be_v john_n surname_v erigenius_n of_o scotland_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o ireland_n according_a to_o the_o language_n of_o our_o time_n their_o write_n have_v not_o have_v the_o same_o fate_n for_o those_o of_o ratramn_n have_v be_v preserve_v unto_o we_o but_o as_o for_o those_o of_o john_n they_o be_v condemn_v and_o burn_v two_o hundred_o year_n after_o at_o the_o council_n of_o verceill_n and_o as_o they_o be_v two_o several_a writer_n so_o we_o must_v also_o distinguish_v they_o in_o this_o history_n and_o that_o we_o speak_v of_o each_o of_o they_o several_o to_o begin_v with_o ratramn_o priest_n of_o the_o monastery_n of_o corby_n and_o afterward_o abbot_n of_o orbais_n i_o say_v he_o be_v a_o man_n so_o esteem_v in_o his_o time_n that_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n make_v choice_n of_o he_o to_o defend_v the_o latin_a church_n against_o the_o greek_n and_o by_o the_o industry_n of_o dom_n luke_n d'achery_n a_o benedictine_n friar_n we_o have_v in_o our_o hand_n the_o four_o book_n which_o he_o compose_v and_o be_v such_o that_o when_o i_o compare_v they_o with_o that_o write_v by_o aeneas_n bishop_n of_o paris_n in_o the_o same_o century_n and_o in_o defence_n of_o the_o same_o cause_n i_o find_v as_o great_a difference_n betwixt_o they_o as_o betwixt_o light_n and_o darkness_n or_o at_o least_o betwixt_o the_o weak_a essay_n of_o some_o illiterate_a person_n and_o the_o accomplish_a work_n of_o a_o exquisite_a artist_n because_o in_o truth_n the_o work_n of_o aeneas_n be_v extreme_o weak_a in_o comparison_n of_o that_o of_o ratramn_v i_o say_v of_o that_o ratramn_v unto_o who_o the_o abbot_n trithemius_n ascribe_v such_o great_a commendation_n in_o the_o xv_o century_n and_o who_o the_o disciple_n of_o st._n austin_n defender_n of_o the_o free_a grace_n of_o jesus_n christ_n so_o much_o admire_v when_o they_o make_v use_v of_o what_o he_o write_v touch_v the_o doctrine_n of_o predestination_n therefore_o the_o precedent_n mauguin_n speak_v of_o he_o say_v 135._o mauguin_n dissertat_fw-la hist_o
a._n ibid._n p._n 362._o a._n and_o upon_o this_o also_o i_o will_v no_o more_o drink_n of_o this_o fruit_n of_o the_o vine_n until_o the_o day_n i_o drink_v it_o new_a with_o you_o in_o my_o father_n kingdom_n after_o that_o time_n of_o supper_n say_v he_o he_o drink_v no_o wine_n until_o he_o become_v immortal_a and_o incorruptible_a after_o his_o resurrection_n this_o be_v the_o explication_n protestant_n give_v unto_o the_o word_n of_o druthmar_n hitherto_o we_o have_v speak_v of_o writer_n of_o the_o ix_o century_n out_o of_o who_o it_o be_v accustom_v to_o produce_v testimony_n to_o prove_v that_o they_o oppose_v the_o doctrine_n of_o paschas_fw-la radbert_n except_v heribold_n unto_o who_o we_o reserve_v a_o chapter_n apart_o but_o beside_o these_o witness_n which_o have_v depose_v there_o be_v some_o other_o who_o testimony_n may_v conduce_v to_o the_o clear_v the_o subject_a we_o treat_v of_o therefore_o we_o will_v make_v no_o difficulty_n to_o receive_v their_o deposition_n begin_v with_o ahyto_n ahyto_fw-it bishop_n of_o basle_n be_v so_o famous_a for_o his_o holiness_n of_o life_n for_o the_o light_n of_o his_o doctrine_n and_o for_o his_o wisdom_n in_o manage_v great_a and_o important_a affair_n that_o charlemagne_n have_v a_o very_a particular_a kindness_n and_o esteem_n for_o he_o whereupon_o in_o the_o year_n 811._o he_o send_v he_o ambassador_n unto_o constantinople_n to_o treat_v of_o peace_n with_o the_o eastern_a emperor_n as_o the_o annal_n of_o france_n eginhard_n author_n of_o the_o life_n of_o charlemagne_n the_o annal_n of_o fulda_n herman_n contract_n and_o other_o do_v testify_v this_o ahyto_n who_o depart_v this_o life_n anno_fw-la 836._o leave_v a_o capitulary_a for_o the_o instruction_n of_o the_o priest_n of_o his_o diocese_n which_o dom_n luke_n d'achery_n cause_v to_o be_v print_v three_o or_o four_o year_n since_o the_o copy_n of_o it_o be_v send_v he_o from_o rome_n and_o take_v from_o a_o manuscript_n of_o the_o library_n of_o cardinal_n francis_n barbarini_n the_o same_o d'achery_n observe_v also_o that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o manuscript_n copy_n of_o the_o vatican_n library_n now_o among_o many_o other_o instruction_n which_o he_o give_v unto_o his_o priest_n in_o this_o capitulary_a this_o be_v to_o be_v read_v 692._o anyco_n apud_fw-la dom._n luc._n d'acher_n spicileg_n t._n 6._o p._n 692._o in_o the_o five_o place_n the_o priest_n ought_v to_o know_v what_o the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n and_o of_o confirmation_n be_v and_o what_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v how_o a_o visible_a creature_n be_v see_v in_o the_o same_o mystery_n and_o nevertheless_o invisible_a salvation_n be_v there_o communicate_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o soul_n the_o which_o be_v contain_v in_o faith_n only_o ahito_n speak_v of_o baptism_n and_o of_o the_o eucharist_n he_o distinguish_v in_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o the_o sign_n and_o the_o thing_n signify_v and_o lay_v it_o down_o for_o certain_a that_o in_o both_o of_o they_o alike_o there_o be_v a_o visible_a creature_n without_o make_v any_o distinction_n betwixt_o the_o creature_n that_o be_v see_v in_o the_o eucharist_n and_o that_o which_o be_v see_v in_o baptism_n it_o must_v needs_o be_v then_o of_o necessity_n that_o as_o by_o the_o creature_n which_o be_v see_v in_o baptism_n he_o understand_v the_o substance_n of_o water_n and_o chrism_n so_o also_o by_o that_o which_o be_v see_v in_o the_o eucharist_n he_o understand_v the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o because_o baptism_n and_o the_o eucharist_n be_v two_o sacrament_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n institute_v by_o one_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o appoint_v to_o render_v we_o partaker_n of_o his_o grace_n ahyto_n attribute_n unto_o they_o both_o the_o same_o effect_n viz._n the_o communication_n of_o eternal_a and_o invisible_a salvation_n unto_o those_o which_o receive_v both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o of_o these_o sacrament_n with_o faith_n no_o other_o sense_n can_v be_v give_v unto_o the_o word_n of_o this_o bishop_n neither_o can_v it_o be_v avoid_v by_o consequence_n to_o conclude_v but_o that_o his_o doctrine_n be_v direct_o contrary_a unto_o that_o of_o paschas_fw-la unto_o this_o bishop_n of_o basil_n i_o will_v join_v another_o of_o orleans_n 18._o theodulphu-aurelian_a ad_fw-la magn._n senon_n de_fw-fr ordine_fw-la baptis_n c._n 18._o i_o mean_v theodolph_n who_o in_o the_o year_n 817._o be_v of_o the_o conspiration_n of_o bernard_n king_n of_o italy_n against_o the_o emperor_n lewis_n the_o debonair_a and_o who_o speak_v thus_o in_o his_o treatise_n of_o the_o order_n of_o baptism_n there_o be_v a_o save_a sacrifice_n which_o melchisedek_n king_n of_o salem_n offer_v under_o the_o old_a testament_n in_o figure_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o which_o the_o mediator_n of_o god_n and_o man_n have_v accomplish_v under_o the_o new_a before_o he_o be_v deliver_v up_o when_o he_o take_v the_o bread_n and_o the_o wine_n bless_v they_o and_o distribute_v then_o unto_o his_o disciple_n he_o command_v they_o to_o do_v those_o thing_n in_o remembrance_n of_o he_o it_o be_v then_o this_o mystical_a sacrifice_n which_o the_o church_n celebrate_v have_v leave_v and_o put_v a_o end_n unto_o the_o ancient_a sacrifice_n offer_v bread_n because_o of_o the_o bread_n of_o life_n that_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n and_o wine_n because_o of_o he_o that_o say_v i_o be_o the_o true_a vine_n to_o the_o end_n that_o by_o the_o priest_n visible_a offering_n and_o by_o the_o invisible_a consecration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n the_o bread_n and_o wine_n shall_v pass_v into_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o which_o blood_n water_n be_v mingle_v either_o because_o water_n flow_v out_o of_o the_o side_n of_o christ_n with_o the_o blood_n or_o that_o because_o according_a to_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o ancient_n as_o jesus_n christ_n be_v figure_v by_o the_o wine_n so_o the_o people_n be_v figure_v by_o the_o water_n this_o prelate_n intimate_v that_o jesus_n christ_n accomplish_v under_o the_o gospel_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o melchisedek_n which_o be_v a_o sacrifice_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o he_o demonstrate_v by_o the_o act_n of_o our_o saviour_n who_o institute_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n take_v bread_n and_o wine_n and_o have_v bless_v they_o give_v they_o they_o unto_o his_o disciple_n with_o order_n to_o commemorate_v he_o in_o the_o celebration_n of_o this_o mystery_n he_o declare_v it_o be_v the_o sacrifice_n which_o the_o church_n celebrate_v offer_v bread_n and_o wine_n that_o the_o wine_n in_o the_o cup_n signify_v jesus_n christ_n as_o the_o water_n do_v the_o people_n and_o that_o in_o fine_a all_o that_o befall_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n by_o consecration_n be_v that_o they_o pass_v he_o do_v not_o say_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n which_o he_o must_v needs_o have_v say_v if_o he_o have_v believe_v the_o real_a presence_n but_o he_o say_v they_o pass_v into_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n because_o indeed_o we_o shall_v consider_v they_o as_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n for_o they_o be_v in_o the_o room_n and_o be_v invest_v with_o the_o dignity_n of_o his_o person_n and_o accompany_v in_o their_o lawful_a use_n with_o the_o virtue_n and_o efficacy_n of_o his_o body_n break_v and_o of_o his_o blood_n pour_v forth_o according_a to_o which_o he_o order_v in_o his_o capitulary_a every_o lord_n day_n to_o receive_v during_o lent_n time_n the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 41.44_o id._n in_o capitulari_fw-la c._n 41.44_o and_o prescribe_v the_o disposition_n with_o which_o one_o shall_v approach_v unto_o so_o great_a a_o sacrament_n thus_o it_o be_v that_o several_a do_v understand_v this_o passage_n of_o theodolph_n after_o the_o testimony_n of_o two_o bishop_n we_o be_v oblige_v to_o mention_v a_o archbishop_n of_o lion_n who_o live_v in_o the_o same_o century_n and_o who_o in_o the_o year_n 834._o be_v of_o the_o number_n of_o the_o prelate_n which_o join_v with_o the_o child_n against_o the_o father_n deprive_v lewis_n the_o debonair_a of_o crown_n and_o sceptre_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o perceive_v that_o i_o mean_v agobard_fw-mi who_o undoubted_o be_v one_o of_o the_o most_o learned_a bishop_n of_o his_o time_n and_o who_o write_n as_o i_o conceive_v have_v more_o of_o light_n and_o vigour_n and_o although_o he_o have_v not_o say_v very_o much_o of_o the_o eucharist_n yet_o we_o will_v nevertheless_o judge_v of_o his_o belief_n upon_o this_o article_n both_o by_o his_o word_n and_o by_o his_o silence_n the_o better_a to_o understand_v of_o what_o import_n his_o silence_n be_v it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o amalarius_n of_o who_o we_o
appertain_v unto_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o principal_a chaplain_n which_o he_o design_n by_o the_o word_n apocrisary_n he_o have_v care_n say_v he_o of_o all_o that_o concern_v ecclesiastical_a matter_n 20._o ibid._n c._n 20._o as_o also_o of_o difference_n betwixt_o prebend_n and_o monk_n and_o general_o of_o all_o matter_n that_o be_v report_v unto_o the_o prince_n palace_n touch_v the_o affair_n of_o the_o clergy_n the_o king_n take_v cognizance_n only_o of_o what_o his_o chief_a chaplain_n can_v not_o full_o determine_v and_o as_o the_o count_n of_o the_o palace_n judge_v of_o temporal_a matter_n in_o the_o assembly_n of_o the_o peer_n of_o the_o realm_n and_o of_o the_o bishop_n as_o appear_v by_o this_o ancient_a formulary_a in_o mr._n bignon_n note_n above_o mention_v so_o it_o be_v very_o likely_a that_o the_o arch_a chaplain_n also_o judge_v of_o ecclesiastical_a and_o sacred_a thing_n in_o the_o same_o assembly_n beside_o that_o he_o assist_v and_o be_v present_a at_o all_o the_o consultation_n and_o council_n which_o be_v hold_v in_o the_o king_n court_n either_o touch_v public_a or_o private_a matter_n it_o be_v true_a this_o dignity_n be_v only_o temporary_a and_o during_o the_o king_n pleasure_n that_o bestow_v it_o therefore_o loup_n abbot_n of_o ferrier_n 97._o lupus_fw-la ep._n 97._o write_v unto_o halduin_n abbot_n of_o st._n dennis_n who_o be_v chief_a chaplain_n unto_o lewis_n the_o debonair_a we_o believe_v you_o will_v enjoy_v this_o dignity_n for_o some_o time_n and_o from_o thence_o he_o take_v occasion_n to_o exhort_v he_o to_o use_v it_o worthy_o and_o to_o do_v justice_n and_o because_o bishop_n be_v determine_v by_o their_o flock_n where_o to_o live_v and_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v already_o acquire_v great_a power_n in_o france_n prince_n do_v in_o some_o sort_n desire_v liberty_n to_o withdraw_v they_o from_o their_o church_n gall._n council_n franc._n can_v 55._o t._n 2._o council_n gall._n to_o have_v they_o near_o their_o person_n and_o in_o their_o house_n as_o we_o be_v inform_v by_o one_o of_o the_o cannon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o francford_n which_o also_o show_v we_o that_o the_o permission_n of_o the_o synod_n be_v as_o necessary_a thereunto_o as_o that_o of_o the_o apostolical_a see_n in_o the_o main_a this_o dignity_n be_v so_o eminent_a that_o if_o a_o abbot_n have_v it_o he_o have_v the_o precedency_n of_o bishop_n 110_o baluz_fw-fr in_o not_o be_v add_v lup._n p._n 463._o &_o ad_fw-la agobard_n p._n 73._o lupus_fw-la ep._n 110_o as_o mounseur_fw-fr baluze_fw-fr do_v prove_v by_o the_o capitulary_a of_o charles_n the_o bald_a but_o if_o a_o bishop_n have_v it_o he_o take_v place_n of_o metropolitan_o and_o archbishop_n even_o in_o council_n because_o this_o employment_n be_v the_o chief_a degree_n of_o all_o the_o palatine_a dignity_n that_o be_v of_o the_o king_n household_n dignitatis_fw-la apex_n it_o be_v the_o title_n give_v it_o by_o the_o abbot_n de_fw-fr ferrier_n and_o that_o the_o chief_a chaplain_n be_v establish_v by_o god_n over_o sacred_a thing_n as_o the_o church_n of_o sans_o speak_v unto_o the_o abbot_n hilduin_n 650._o t._n 2._o council_n gall._n p._n 650._o in_o the_o letter_n she_o direct_v unto_o he_o while_o he_o be_v possess_v of_o this_o dignity_n and_o there_o be_v no_o question_n but_o the_o bishop_n which_o be_v thereunto_o appoint_v by_o the_o king_n and_o emperor_n take_v precedency_n of_o metropolitan_o in_o synod_n also_o because_o it_o be_v in_o this_o quality_n that_o ebrion_n bishop_n of_o poitiers_n 175._o council_n vern_n in_o titulo_fw-la conci_fw-la mogun_n in_o praefat_fw-la lupus_fw-la ep._n 110_o tom._n 7._o spicil_n dacher_n p._n 175._o preside_v at_o the_o council_n of_o vernon_n anno_fw-la 844._o hildebald_a in_o that_o of_o mayans_n anno_fw-la 813._o for_o although_o he_o be_v archbishop_n of_o cologne_n yet_o it_o be_v as_o prince_n chaplain_n of_o the_o sacred_a palace_n and_o as_o the_o master_n of_o the_o church_n to_o speak_v with_o loup_n de_fw-fr ferrier_n that_o he_o there_o precide_v and_o that_o to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o richolf_n a_o elder_a archbishop_n and_o beside_o archbishop_n of_o the_o place_n where_o the_o council_n be_v assemble_v and_o drogo_n bishop_n of_o metz_n in_o the_o assembly_n hold_v at_o ingleshem_n in_o the_o year_n 840._o for_o the_o re-establish_a of_o ebo_n archbishop_n of_o rheims_n not_o any_o of_o the_o archbishop_n or_o metropolitan_o thereunto_o gainsay_v he_o be_v there_o also_o call_v chief_a palatine_a prelate_n yet_o i_o will_v not_o deny_v but_o i_o have_v observe_v that_o joseph_n bishop_n of_o jury_n chief_a chaplain_n of_o the_o emperor_n lewis_n the_o second_o son_n of_o lothair_n and_o grandchild_n to_o lewis_n the_o debonair_a subscribe_v after_o the_o envoy_n of_o the_o archbishop_n of_o ravenna_n at_o the_o council_n at_o rome_n under_o pope_n leo_fw-la the_o four_o for_o the_o deposition_n of_o anastatius_fw-la not_o of_o anastatius_fw-la the_o library_n keeper_n as_o the_o great_a vossius_fw-la father_n of_o isaac_n vossius_fw-la his_o worthy_a son_n in_o his_o book_n of_o latin_a historian_n unadvised_o suppose_v but_o of_o anastatius_fw-la a_o priest_n of_o the_o order_n of_o st._n marcell_n yet_o i_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o this_o example_n do_v prejudice_v the_o right_n and_o privilege_n of_o the_o principal_a chaplain_n there_o be_v some_o reason_n for_o so_o do_v 111.114_o collect._n rom._n bipart_o part_n 2._o p._n 111.114_o because_o of_o the_o presence_n of_o the_o emperor_n lothair_n father_n of_o lewis_n who_o assist_v at_o this_o assembly_n and_o thereunto_o subscribe_v take_v from_o the_o arch_a chaplain_n of_o his_o son_n part_n of_o his_o splendour_n and_o of_o his_o privilege_n i_o will_v add_v unto_o all_o we_o have_v say_v of_o this_o dignity_n two_o circumstance_n which_o i_o suppose_v will_v not_o be_v unwelcome_a to_o the_o reader_n one_o be_v that_o it_o may_v be_v collect_v from_o the_o seven_o chapter_n of_o the_o letter_n which_o the_o prelate_n assemble_v at_o cressy_n 7._o council_n carisiac_n c._n 7._o anno_fw-la 858._o write_v unto_o lewis_n king_n of_o germany_n that_o the_o dignity_n of_o principal_a chaplain_n decrease_v by_o little_a and_o little_a that_o of_o count_n of_o the_o palace_n gain_v upon_o it_o insensible_o which_o oblige_v those_o bishop_n to_o move_v for_o the_o re-establish_a of_o it_o the_o other_o be_v that_o the_o chronicle_n of_o laurisham_n 805._o chron._n laurisham_n ad_fw-la a_o 805._o give_v unto_o eginhard_n son_n in_o law_n unto_o charlemagne_n the_o quality_n of_o principal_a chaplain_n so_o that_o it_o may_v be_v say_v that_o at_o that_o time_n the_o principal_a chaplain_n be_v marry_v which_o nevertheless_o i_o refer_v unto_o the_o judgement_n of_o other_o without_o interpose_v my_o own_o but_o have_v prove_v that_o heribold_n be_v principal_a chaplain_n unto_o charles_n the_o bald_a and_o show_v the_o importance_n of_o this_o employment_n we_o must_v say_v something_o of_o his_o belief_n touch_v the_o matter_n whereof_o we_o treat_v the_o anonymous_n author_n that_o side_v with_o paschas_fw-la who_o we_o have_v several_a time_n allege_v say_v positive_o of_o he_o and_o of_o rabanus_n that_o they_o teach_v 61._o anonym_n apud_fw-la cellot_n hist_o got._n tesc_n append_v opusc_n 7._o p._n 541._o thom._n wald._a t._n 2._o c._n 19.52.61_o ibid._n c._n 61._o that_o the_o sacrament_n go_v into_o the_o draft_n thomas_n waldensis_n say_v also_o the_o same_o heribold_n say_v he_o bishop_n of_o auxerr_n and_o rabanus_n archbishop_n of_o mayance_n have_v teach_v that_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v subject_a unto_o the_o place_n of_o excrement_n wickliff_n say_v he_o again_o be_v of_o accord_n with_o heribold_n and_o rabanus_n of_o mayance_n who_o teach_v that_o the_o venerable_a sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n be_v subject_a unto_o the_o draft_n it_o be_v not_o then_o to_o be_v wonder_v at_o that_o rabanus_n dedicate_v his_o penitential_a unto_o he_o wherein_o he_o have_v leave_v mark_n of_o this_o doctrine_n peter_n stuart_n who_o cause_v it_o to_o be_v print_v give_v notice_n that_o rabanus_n dedicate_v it_o unto_o heribold_n bishop_n of_o auxerr_n i_o know_v that_o cardinal_n du_fw-fr perron_n who_o have_v a_o extraordinary_a genius_n and_o several_a other_o since_o follow_v his_o step_n will_v make_v i_o know_v not_o what_o sect_n of_o stercoranists_n whereof_o heribold_n be_v chief_a and_o who_o opinion_n be_v quite_o different_a from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o those_o call_v calvinist_n to_o be_v adversary_n unto_o paschas_fw-la but_o to_o speak_v free_o what_o i_o think_v i_o can_v wish_v that_o great_a man_n will_v act_v after_o another_o manner_n and_o that_o they_o will_v not_o insist_v upon_o these_o sort_n of_o cavil_n there_o be_v here_o question_v make_v of_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o adversary_n of_o paschas_fw-la will_v cardinal_n du_fw-fr perron_n and_o those_o which_o follow_v this_o fiction_n of_o his_o
the_o bald_a to_o make_v choice_n of_o heribold_n for_o his_o principal_a chaplain_n if_o his_o opinion_n have_v be_v a_o heretical_a and_o heterodox_n opinion_n a_o opinion_n contrary_a to_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o church_n as_o well_o as_o unto_o that_o of_o adrian_n and_o of_o nicholas_n but_o beside_o whilst_o nicholas_n hold_v the_o see_v of_o rome_n there_o be_v arise_v a_o great_a contest_v betwixt_o the_o greek_a and_o latin_a church_n betwixt_o nicholas_n and_o photius_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n nicholas_n sue_v for_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n to_o defend_v the_o latin_n against_o the_o greek_n the_o french_a prelate_n make_v choice_n of_o bertram_n or_o ratramn_v who_o by_o their_o order_n undertake_v the_o defence_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n against_o the_o greek_a and_o in_o the_o four_o book_n he_o write_v and_o which_o be_v now_o extant_a refute_v the_o accusation_n of_o the_o greek_n against_o the_o latin_n this_o ratramn_v i_o say_v which_o by_o order_n of_o king_n charles_n the_o bald_a compose_v a_o treatise_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n wherein_o he_o plain_o oppose_v the_o doctrine_n of_o paschas_fw-la and_o do_v establish_v that_o of_o his_o adversary_n be_v it_o likely_a say_v many_o that_o if_o the_o belief_n of_o ratramn_n have_v not_o be_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o church_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n will_v have_v make_v choice_n of_o he_o to_o have_v defend_v the_o interest_n of_o the_o latin_n against_o the_o insolence_n of_o the_o greek_n or_o if_o the_o french_a prelate_n persuade_v of_o the_o same_o belief_n make_v no_o difficulty_n to_o make_v choice_n of_o ratramn_n can_v it_o be_v imagine_v nicholas_n will_v have_v approve_v this_o choice_n if_o he_o have_v be_v of_o another_o persuasion_n in_o this_o essential_a point_n of_o religion_n i_o know_v that_o nicholas_n write_v unto_o charles_n the_o bald_a desire_v he_o will_v send_v he_o the_o latin_a translation_n of_o the_o hierarchy_n of_o the_o pretend_a dennis_n the_o arcopagite_n make_v by_o john_n erigenius_n who_o also_o write_v of_o the_o sacrament_n by_o order_n of_o the_o same_o prince_n but_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o be_v write_v by_o protestant_a doctor_n and_o that_o this_o pope_n allege_v for_o a_o reason_n that_o though_o this_o john_n be_v repute_v to_o be_v very_o learned_a nevertheless_o it_o be_v say_v ivone_n nicolaus_n i._n t._n 3._o council_n gall._n p._n 352._o ex_fw-la ivone_n that_o he_o have_v not_o former_o good_a opinion_n of_o certain_a thing_n but_o those_o thing_n concern_v not_o the_o eucharist_n for_o it_o be_v not_o probable_a nicholas_n will_v have_v speak_v so_o cold_o if_o these_o ill_a opinion_n of_o john_n have_v be_v upon_o the_o subject_a of_o the_o sacrament_n beside_o he_o will_v not_o have_v fail_v to_o have_v demand_v what_o he_o have_v write_v either_o to_o have_v condemn_v or_o approve_v it_o as_o he_o intend_v to_o do_v of_o the_o translation_n of_o the_o work_n of_o denis_n the_o arcopagite_n and_o he_o will_v have_v demand_v it_o so_o much_o the_o more_o earnest_o as_o that_o there_o be_v more_o to_o be_v fear_v by_o the_o one_o than_o the_o other_o i_o mean_v by_o what_o he_o have_v write_v upon_o the_o subject_a of_o the_o eucharist_n than_o of_o his_o translation_n of_o the_o pretend_a denis_n the_o arcopagite_n add_v unto_o all_o this_o that_o if_o any_o ill_a report_n have_v be_v publish_v of_o john_n touch_v the_o subject_a of_o the_o sacrament_n it_o have_v be_v by_o reason_n of_o the_o adversary_n which_o his_o ill_a choice_n upon_o the_o point_n of_o predestination_n have_v stir_v he_o up_o yet_o nevertheless_o it_o be_v certain_a they_o never_o tax_v he_o to_o have_v err_v in_o this_o point_n it_o must_v then_o be_v conclude_v that_o the_o ill_a opinion_n mention_v by_o nicholas_n and_o whereof_o the_o report_n come_v unto_o he_o concern_v the_o matter_n of_o predestination_n whereupon_o john_n erigenius_n suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v lead_v away_o unto_o ungrounded_a and_o empty_a conception_n which_o be_v aggravate_v with_o some_o heat_n by_o the_o learned_a church_n of_o lion_n by_o florus_n its_o deacon_n by_o prudens_fw-la bishop_n of_o troy_n and_o by_o the_o council_n of_o valentia_n and_o of_o langre_n yet_o these_o adversary_n incense_v against_o he_o never_o accuse_v he_o of_o any_o ill_a opinion_n touch_v the_o sacrament_n from_o whence_o it_o be_v conclude_v that_o his_o doctrine_n in_o this_o point_n direct_o opposite_a unto_o that_o of_o paschas_fw-la be_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n therefore_o neither_o nicholas_n the_o first_o nor_o any_o of_o his_o successor_n do_v condemn_v it_o until_o leo_n the_o nine_o who_o condemn_v his_o book_n to_o be_v burn_v at_o the_o council_n of_o verseil_n anno_fw-la 1050._o where_o berengarius_fw-la be_v also_o condemn_v i_o know_v also_o that_o the_o same_o nicholas_n speak_v of_o the_o virtue_n of_o consecration_n and_o of_o what_o it_o operate_v in_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v consecrate_a and_o sanctify_a allege_v for_o example_n the_o altar_n the_o cross_n the_o bread_n and_o wine_n of_o the_o eucharist_n and_o that_o he_o observe_v that_o the_o altar_n which_o natural_o be_v but_o a_o common_a stone_n and_o that_o differ_v not_o from_o other_o become_v by_o the_o benediction_n the_o holy_a table_n that_o the_o image_n of_o the_o cross_n which_o be_v but_o common_a wood_n before_o it_o receive_v this_o form_n become_v holy_a and_o terrible_a unto_o devil_n 489._o nicol._n 1._o ep._n 2._o 〈◊〉_d council_n p._n 489._o after_o have_v receive_v it_o and_o that_o therefore_o jesus_n christ_n be_v represent_v in_o it_o that_o the_o bread_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v common_a bread_n but_o when_o it_o be_v consecrate_a it_o become_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n in_o truth_n and_o be_v say_v to_o be_v so_o and_o the_o wine_n his_o blood_n but_o some_o say_v these_o word_n do_v not_o prejudice_v the_o observation_n we_o have_v make_v because_o nicholas_n consider_v the_o virtue_n and_o efficacy_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o that_o in_o this_o regard_n it_o be_v true_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n because_o in_o the_o lawful_a celebration_n it_o possess_v the_o full_a efficacy_n and_o virtue_n of_o it_o and_o as_o he_o speak_v almost_o as_o the_o prelate_n of_o the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a do_v i_o desire_v the_o reader_n will_v please_v to_o see_v what_o have_v be_v say_v in_o the_o 12_o chapter_n because_o it_o be_v suppose_v after_o that_o he_o will_v be_v satisfy_v no_o advantage_n can_v be_v draw_v from_o the_o word_n of_o nicholas_n against_o what_o have_v be_v observe_v in_o his_o proceed_n upon_o this_o important_a occasion_n wherein_o i_o do_v not_o interpose_v my_o judgement_n and_o what_o be_v say_v of_o the_o proceed_n of_o nicholas_n the_o first_o be_v also_o affirm_v of_o adrian_n the_o second_o who_o silence_n in_o most_o of_o the_o thing_n speak_v of_o pope_n nicholas_n and_o which_o we_o pretend_v not_o to_o repeat_v over_o again_o do_v evident_o prove_v that_o he_o no_o more_o than_o his_o predecessor_n do_v not_o condemn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o adversary_n of_o paschas_fw-la i_o will_v only_o add_v that_o in_o the_o hot_a contest_v which_o adrian_n have_v with_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n upon_o account_n of_o hincmar_n bishop_n of_o laon_n he_o never_o tax_v they_o with_o any_o thing_n touch_v the_o sacrament_n and_o what_o make_v the_o thing_n the_o more_o considerable_a be_v that_o charles_n the_o bald_a have_v interpose_v in_o the_o quarrel_n as_o protector_n of_o the_o cannon_n and_o of_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o prelate_n of_o his_o kingdom_n pope_n adrian_n command_v he_o to_o send_v hincmar_n bishop_n of_o laon_n to_o rome_n condemn_v by_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o gallican_n church_n which_o so_o high_o displease_v the_o king_n that_o he_o make_v he_o a_o very_a sharp_a answer_n wherein_o he_o tell_v he_o among_o other_o thing_n that_o the_o king_n of_o france_n bear_v of_o royal_a blood_n 274._o ep._n carol._n calvin_n ad_fw-la hadria_n papam_fw-la 2._o in_o supplem_n council_n gall._n p._n 269._o 271_o 272._o 274._o be_v not_o vice-roys_n of_o bishop_n but_o master_n of_o the_o kingdom_n he_o demand_v what_o hell_n have_v spew_v out_o a_o law_n that_o shall_v impose_v upon_o prince_n and_o out_o of_o what_o dark_a cave_n it_o proceed_v he_o warn_v he_o not_o to_o direct_v any_o command_n unto_o he_o for_o the_o future_a nor_o threat_n of_o excommunication_n contrary_n to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o ancient_n the_o imperial_a constitution_n and_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n he_o desire_v he_o will_v write_v he_o no_o more_o such_o letter_n nor_o to_o the_o bishop_n and_o great_a lord_n of_o his_o kingdom_n lest_o they_o shall_v be_v force_v to_o reject_v they_o with_o scorn_n
church_n that_o it_o be_v a_o leaden_a age_n a_o iron_n and_o unhappy_a age_n a_o age_n of_o darkness_n ignorance_n superstition_n and_o obscurity_n whereas_o his_o adversary_n esteem_v it_o to_o be_v a_o age_n of_o light_n a_o age_n of_o grace_n and_o benediction_n for_o my_o particular_a although_o i_o know_v that_o he_o which_o esteem_v it_o a_o age_n of_o darkness_n be_v support_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o all_o or_o at_o least_o the_o great_a number_n of_o historian_n which_o have_v write_v of_o it_o especial_o of_o baronius_n gennebrard_n and_o bellarmine_n and_o that_o so_o far_o he_o have_v not_o say_v any_o thing_n of_o his_o own_o and_o that_o the_o reason_n of_o his_o adversary_n which_o represent_v it_o as_o a_o age_n of_o learning_n and_o benediction_n do_v not_o appear_v unto_o i_o of_o sufficient_a force_n to_o invalidate_v what_o he_o have_v establish_v upon_o the_o report_n of_o historian_n i_o will_v however_o make_v a_o three_o party_n in_o this_o rencontre_n and_o hold_v the_o mean_a betwixt_o these_o two_o extreme_n i_o say_v that_o i_o will_v not_o absolute_o follow_v the_o historian_n which_o represent_v it_o whole_o dark_a and_o ignorant_a nor_o the_o author_n of_o the_o perpetuity_n which_o represent_v it_o all_o light_n and_o glorious_a for_o if_o i_o do_v not_o make_v it_o a_o age_n whole_o light_a neither_o will_v i_o esteem_v it_o to_o be_v whole_o darkness_n if_o i_o judge_v it_o not_o to_o be_v a_o age_n of_o grace_n neither_o do_v i_o conceive_v it_o to_o be_v one_o altogether_o unfortunate_a if_o it_o appear_v not_o unto_o i_o to_o be_v whole_o a_o age_n of_o benediction_n neither_o do_v it_o appear_v to_o be_v only_o a_o age_n of_o malediction_n in_o a_o word_n if_o i_o look_v not_o upon_o it_o to_o be_v a_o age_n of_o hillary_n of_o athanasius_n of_o basill_n of_o gregory_n and_o of_o ambrose_n or_o as_o a_o age_n of_o chrisostom_n of_o jeromes_n and_o of_o augustine_n yet_o i_o do_v not_o regard_v it_o as_o a_o age_n of_o bareletes_n of_o maillards_n and_o of_o menot_n i_o do_v not_o liken_v it_o unto_o a_o fair_a summer_n day_n when_o the_o heaven_n be_v free_a from_o cloud_n the_o sun_n shine_v in_o its_o full_a force_n and_o communicate_v unto_o we_o without_o any_o obstruction_n his_o light_n and_o heat_n but_o unto_o a_o winter_n day_n which_o be_v dark_a and_o the_o air_n full_a of_o thick_a cloud_n deprive_v we_o of_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o sun_n yet_o not_o total_o of_o its_o light_n so_o that_o we_o have_v still_o leave_v we_o sufficient_a to_o direct_v we_o although_o it_o may_v not_o be_v always_o enough_o to_o hinder_v we_o from_o stumble_v in_o like_a manner_n say_v some_o during_o the_o x._o century_n the_o sin_n of_o man_n have_v make_v a_o thick_a cloud_n betwixt_o the_o sun_n of_o righteousness_n and_o they_o he_o communicate_v not_o unto_o they_o full_o the_o light_n of_o his_o healthful_a beam_n although_o he_o impart_v unto_o they_o sufficient_a to_o avoid_v the_o error_n which_o can_v be_v believe_v without_o ruin_n and_o to_o embrace_v the_o truth_n the_o knowledge_n whereof_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n what_o likelihood_n say_v some_o be_v there_o that_o have_v shed_v forth_o so_o much_o light_n upon_o the_o ix_o century_n for_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o truth_n that_o man_n shall_v on_o a_o sudden_a be_v plunge_v into_o darkness_n but_o what_o likelihood_n be_v there_o also_o that_o the_o same_o crace_n with_o the_o same_o freedom_n shall_v be_v continue_v to_o be_v dispense_v unto_o man_n when_o it_o be_v see_v that_o they_o begin_v to_o abuse_v they_o and_o that_o the_o flesh_n gain_v by_o little_a and_o little_a the_o victory_n over_o the_o spirit_n they_o degenerate_v insensible_o from_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o belief_n and_o the_o purity_n of_o their_o devotion_n nevertheless_o as_o god_n be_v infinite_o good_a and_o that_o he_o never_o leave_v himself_o without_o witness_n of_o do_v good_a unto_o man_n however_o unthankful_a and_o ungrateful_a they_o be_v so_o if_o he_o dispense_v not_o sufficient_a knowledge_n unto_o the_o man_n of_o the_o x._o century_n to_o oppose_v the_o opinion_n of_o paschas_fw-la with_o the_o same_o vigour_n as_o it_o be_v oppose_v in_o the_o ix_o yet_o he_o dispense_v they_o so_o much_o as_o to_o hinder_v it_o from_o be_v establish_v all_o that_o age_n as_o shall_v be_v show_v in_o the_o progress_n of_o this_o history_n but_o in_o the_o first_o place_n it_o will_v be_v necessary_a to_o relate_v what_o be_v say_v by_o william_n of_o malmesbury_n 〈◊〉_d de_fw-fr gestis_fw-la pontific_n anglor_n 〈◊〉_d of_o odo_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n who_o live_v in_o this_o age_n he_o so_o confirm_v say_v he_o several_a person_n which_o doubt_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n that_o he_o show_v they_o the_o bread_n of_o the_o altar_n change_v into_o flesh_n and_o the_o wine_n of_o the_o cup_n change_v into_o blood_n and_o afterward_o he_o make_v they_o return_v unto_o their_o natural_a form_n and_o render_v they_o proper_a for_o the_o life_n of_o men._n this_o be_v the_o only_a author_n of_o the_o x._o century_n that_o be_v come_v to_o our_o knowledge_n which_o public_o declare_v himself_o for_o the_o opinion_n of_o paschas_fw-la whereas_o the_o historian_n relation_n show_v that_o there_o be_v several_a that_o be_v of_o a_o contrary_a judgement_n and_o who_o have_v no_o small_a inclination_n to_o profess_v it_o open_o beside_o the_o method_n of_o this_o prelate_n to_o make_v they_o receive_v his_o opinion_n seem_v unto_o many_o to_o be_v but_o a_o story_n make_v at_o random_n either_o by_o odo_n himself_o or_o by_o the_o friar_n which_o write_v the_o history_n of_o it_o and_o they_o hearty_o wish_v that_o christian_n will_v not_o use_v these_o kind_n of_o prodigy_n to_o prove_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o their_o religion_n say_v that_o unbeliever_n be_v dissatisfied_n and_o those_o which_o believe_v and_o be_v enlighten_v and_o that_o be_v pious_a can_v receive_v no_o edification_n thereby_o and_o they_o make_v no_o question_n but_o that_o paschas_fw-la render_v his_o doctrine_n suspicious_a unto_o most_o person_n by_o the_o pretend_a miracle_n that_o he_o make_v use_v of_o to_o establish_v it_o because_o this_o kind_n of_o proceed_v show_v plain_o that_o he_o find_v neither_o in_o the_o scripture_n nor_o tradition_n reason_n strong_a enough_o to_o defend_v it_o see_v he_o have_v recourse_n unto_o these_o prodigious_a apparition_n but_o whatever_o this_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n can_v do_v for_o the_o promote_a the_o doctrine_n of_o paschas_fw-la in_o england_n his_o endeavour_n have_v not_o all_o the_o success_n he_o can_v have_v wish_v the_o contrary_a doctrine_n which_o have_v be_v so_o well_o plant_v in_o this_o kingdom_n until_o the_o year_n 883._o by_o john_n erigenius_n one_o of_o the_o great_a adversary_n of_o paschas_fw-la there_o continue_v still_o and_o be_v public_o preach_v in_o fine_a alfric_n which_o some_o also_o esteem_v to_o be_v archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n and_o other_o bishop_n of_o cry_v after_o have_v be_v abbot_n of_o malmesbury_n a_o man_n learn_v according_a to_o those_o time_n in_o a_o sermon_n under_o the_o name_n of_o wulfin_n bishop_n of_o salisbury_n thus_o speak_v of_o the_o sacrament_n 24._o in_o notis_fw-la vheloci_fw-la in_o histor_n bedae_fw-la anglo-sax_n l._n 4._o c._n 24._o about_o the_o year_n 940._o the_o eucharist_n be_v not_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n corporal_o but_o spiritual_o not_o the_o body_n wherein_o he_o suffer_v but_o the_o body_n whereof_o he_o speak_v when_o consecrate_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n he_o say_v this_o be_v my_o body_n this_o be_v my_o blood_n he_o add_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v his_o body_n as_o the_o manna_n and_o the_o wine_n his_o blood_n as_o the_o water_n of_o the_o desert_n be_v if_o this_o sermon_n be_v one_o of_o wulfin_n according_a to_o the_o title_n the_o year_n 840._o as_o we_o have_v compute_v it_o do_v not_o ill_o agree_v with_o it_o but_o if_o it_o be_v alfric_n we_o must_v descend_v low_a towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o x._o century_n 54._o apud_fw-la usser_n de_fw-fr dhristian_a eccles_n success_n &_o statu_fw-la c._n 2._o p._n 54._o there_o be_v another_o which_o some_o cite_v under_o the_o name_n of_o wulfin_n bishop_n of_o salisbury_n and_o other_o attribute_v unto_o alfric_n wherein_o the_o author_n use_v the_o same_o language_n this_o sacrifice_n say_v he_o be_v not_o the_o body_n wherein_o jesus_n christ_n suffer_v for_o we_o nor_o his_o blood_n which_o he_o shed_v but_o it_o be_v make_v spiritual_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n as_o the_o manna_n which_o fall_v from_o heaven_n and_o the_o water_n which_o flow_v from_o the_o rock_n if_o these_o two_o sermon_n be_v of_o two_o several_a author_n we_o have_v already_o two_o witness_n direct_o
contrary_a unto_o the_o doctrine_n of_o paschas_fw-la who_o teach_v that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v no_o other_o flesh_n but_o that_o which_o be_v bear_v of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n and_o which_o suffer_v upon_o the_o cross_n but_o in_o these_o two_o sermon_n the_o people_n be_v teach_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o same_o flesh_n nor_o the_o same_o body_n which_o suffer_v nor_o the_o same_o blood_n which_o be_v shed_v for_o we_o you_o can_v but_o think_v those_o that_o say_v so_o be_v opposite_a unto_o paschas_fw-la and_o endeavour_v to_o ruin_v his_o belief_n and_o it_o may_v be_v also_o that_o of_o odo_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n if_o it_o be_v true_a that_o he_o do_v what_o william_n of_o malmesbury_n write_v a_o long_a while_n after_o for_o there_o be_v a_o great_a many_o that_o think_v this_o relation_n be_v very_o suspicious_a in_o the_o main_a bishop_n usher_z observe_v that_o the_o word_n which_o be_v but_o now_o allege_v in_o the_o last_o testimony_n have_v be_v steal_v away_o by_o some_o perfidious_a hand_n from_o the_o manuscript_n which_o be_v transport_v from_o the_o church_n of_o vigorn_n into_o the_o library_n of_o the_o benedictines_n college_n at_o cambridge_n but_o beside_o these_o two_o witness_n which_o show_v what_o be_v believe_v of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o england_n there_o be_v to_o be_v see_v a_o sermon_n which_o be_v read_v unto_o the_o people_n every_o year_n at_o easter_n to_o preserve_v in_o their_o mind_n a_o idea_n of_o the_o belief_n which_o their_o father_n have_v leave_v they_o it_o be_v needless_a to_o transcribe_v it_o here_o at_o large_a some_o part_n of_o it_o shall_v suffice_v which_o show_v that_o it_o be_v almost_o copy_v out_o of_o the_o treatise_n of_o ratramn_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n they_o will_v by_o the_o same_o mean_n show_v that_o it_o contain_v a_o doctrine_n opposite_a unto_o that_o of_o paschas_fw-la latin_n libre_fw-la catholic_n serm_n anglice_fw-la recitandorum_fw-la ad_fw-la bedam_fw-la l._n 5._o c._n 12._o edit_n anglo-sax_n &_o latin_n see_v ratramn_n be_v one_o of_o his_o declare_a enemy_n there_o be_v great_a difference_n say_v this_o homily_n betwixt_o the_o body_n wherein_o jesus_n christ_n suffer_v and_o the_o body_n which_o be_v consecrate_v for_o the_o eucharist_n for_o the_o body_n wherein_o jesus_n christ_n suffer_v be_v bear_v of_o the_o flesh_n of_o mary_n and_o be_v furnish_v with_o blood_n bones_o skin_n nerve_n and_o humane_a member_n and_o with_o a_o reasonable_a soul_n but_o his_o spiritual_a body_n which_o we_o call_v eucharist_n be_v compose_v of_o several_a grain_n without_o blood_n without_o bone_n and_o member_n and_o without_o a_o soul_n the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o suffer_v death_n and_o which_o rise_v again_o shall_v never_o die_v any_o more_o it_o be_v eternal_a and_o can_v die_v but_o this_o eucharist_n be_v temporal_a not_o eternal_a it_o be_v corruptible_a and_o divide_v into_o several_a part_n break_v by_o the_o tooth_n and_o go_v into_o the_o draft_n this_o sacrament_n be_v a_o pledge_n and_o a_o figure_n the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v the_o truth_n itself_o we_o hold_v this_o pledge_n sacramental_o until_o we_o do_v attain_v unto_o the_o truth_n and_o then_o the_o pledge_n shall_v be_v accomplish_v and_o a_o little_a before_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o eucharist_n in_o a_o corporal_a manner_n we_o see_v that_o it_o be_v a_o corruptible_a and_o fade_a creature_n but_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o spiritual_a virtue_n which_o be_v therein_o we_o know_v very_o well_o that_o there_o be_v life_n in_o it_o and_o that_o it_o give_v immortality_n unto_o those_o which_o which_o receive_v it_o with_o faith_n there_o be_v great_a difference_n between_o the_o invisible_a virtue_n of_o this_o holy_a sacrament_n and_o the_o visible_a form_n of_o its_o proper_a nature_n by_o nature_n it_o be_v fade_a bread_n and_o corruptible_a wine_n but_o by_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o word_n of_o god_n it_o be_v true_o his_o body_n and_o his_o blood_n not_o for_o all_o that_o corporal_o but_o spiritual_o that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o virtue_n and_o in_o efficacy_n whereunto_o amount_v what_o be_v say_v before_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n which_o the_o priest_n do_v consecrate_v ibid._n ibid._n do_v outward_o offer_v one_o thing_n unto_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o body_n and_o another_o thing_n inward_o unto_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o faithful_a soul_n outward_o it_o be_v plain_o see_v it_o be_v bread_n and_o wine_n and_o it_o be_v judge_v to_o be_v such_o by_o its_o form_n and_o by_o its_o savour_n and_o nevertheless_o they_o be_v true_o after_o consecration_n his_o body_n and_o blood_n by_o a_o spiritual_a sacrament_n and_o to_o the_o end_n the_o hearer_n shall_v be_v well_o persuade_v they_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n not_o in_o substance_n but_o in_o virtue_n the_o change_n which_o happen_v unto_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n by_o consecration_n be_v compare_v unto_o that_o which_o come_v unto_o child_n by_o baptism_n and_o unto_o the_o water_n of_o this_o sacrament_n of_o our_o regeneration_n ibid._n ibid._n the_o child_n of_o a_o gentile_a be_v baptize_v yet_o it_o do_v not_o change_v its_o outward_a form_n although_o it_o be_v change_v inward_o it_o be_v lead_v unto_o the_o font_n full_a of_o sin_n by_o the_o disobedience_n of_o adam_n and_o he_o be_v cleanse_v from_o all_o inward_o although_o he_o be_v nothing_o change_v outward_o so_o also_o the_o water_n of_o baptism_n which_o be_v call_v the_o fountain_n of_o life_n in_o appearance_n be_v like_a unto_o other_o water_n and_o subject_n unto_o corruption_n but_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n intervene_v by_o prayer_n unto_o this_o corruptible_a water_n and_o by_o a_o spiritual_a virtue_n render_v it_o fit_a to_o cleanse_v the_o body_n and_o soul_n from_o all_o sin_n now_o we_o consider_v two_o thing_n in_o this_o only_a creature_n according_a to_o its_o true_a nature_n it_o be_v a_o corruptible_a water_n but_o according_a to_o the_o spiritual_a mystery_n it_o have_v a_o save_a virtue_n it_o be_v well_o say_v that_o jesus_n christ_n do_v change_v by_o a_o invisible_a power_n the_o bread_n and_o wine_n into_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n but_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n that_o former_o he_o change_v the_o manna_n and_o the_o water_n of_o the_o rock_n into_o this_o same_o body_n and_o and_o into_o this_o same_o blood_n to_o wit_n because_o he_o make_v it_o the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o of_o his_o blood_n and_o again_o ibid._n ibid._n what_o there_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n that_o give_v life_n proceed_v from_o a_o spiritual_a virtue_n and_o a_o invisible_a operation_n therefore_o the_o eucharist_n be_v call_v a_o sacrament_n because_o one_o thing_n be_v therein_o see_v and_o another_o thing_n be_v understand_v that_o which_o be_v see_v be_v of_o a_o bodily_a species_n that_o which_o be_v understand_v have_v a_o spiritual_a virtue_n and_o in_o another_o part_n of_o the_o sermon_n expound_v what_o jesus_n christ_n say_v of_o eat_v his_o flesh_n in_o the_o 6_o of_o st._n john_n he_o command_v not_o to_o eat_v the_o body_n which_o he_o have_v take_v ibid._n ibid._n nor_o to_o drink_v the_o blood_n which_o he_o have_v shed_v for_o we_o but_o by_o this_o discourse_n he_o mean_v the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v spiritual_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n for_o whosoever_o eat_v he_o with_o a_o believe_a heart_n shall_v have_v this_o life_n everlasting_a under_o the_o old_a law_n believer_n offer_v sacrifice_n which_o represent_v the_o body_n which_o jesus_n christ_n offer_v unto_o his_o father_n for_o our_o sin_n but_o as_o for_o the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v consecrate_v at_o the_o altar_n of_o god_n it_o be_v the_o commemoration_n of_o the_o body_n which_o he_o offer_v and_o of_o the_o blood_n which_o he_o shed_v for_o we_o as_o he_o himself_o command_v say_v do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o i_o be_o not_o ignorant_a that_o in_o this_o same_o homily_n there_o be_v some_o miraculous_a apparition_n make_v mention_v of_o whereunto_o christian_n have_v give_v some_o way_n since_o paschas_fw-la his_o time_n but_o that_o serve_v only_o to_o confirm_v the_o observation_n that_o be_v make_v that_o although_o our_o saviour_n have_v bestow_v upon_o his_o servant_n in_o the_o x._o century_n light_n sufficient_a to_o avoid_v the_o most_o dangerous_a error_n yet_o he_o communicate_v not_o so_o great_a a_o measure_n unto_o they_o as_o to_o be_v safe_a from_o all_o sort_n of_o surprise_v in_o matter_n of_o religion_n if_o from_o england_n we_o pass_v into_o the_o country_n of_o liege_n we_o shall_v there_o find_v folcuin_n abbot_n of_o the_o monastery_n of_o lobe_n who_o speak_v of_o the_o eucharistical_a table_n 573_o tom._n 6._o spicil_n de_fw-fr gestis_fw-la abbot_n lob._n p._n 573_o say_v that_o it_o be_v the_o table_n whereupon_o
represent_v unto_o we_o to_o be_v pure_o spiritual_a 23._o ep._n 23._o wherein_o he_o allege_v the_o word_n of_o st._n austin_n it_o be_v a_o figure_n which_o command_v we_o to_o communicate_v of_o the_o passion_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o to_o represent_v unto_o our_o mind_n sweet_o and_o useful_o that_o his_o body_n be_v crucify_v and_o break_v for_o we_o e._n ep._n 1._o ad_fw-la adeod_n t._n 3._o bibl._n pat._n p._n 438._o a._n b_o post_v poeniten_v mulierum_fw-la p._n 521._o e._n for_o i_o do_v not_o regard_v the_o addition_n that_o some_o unadvised_a hand_n have_v thereunto_o annex_v will_v the_o heretic_n say_v and_o these_o other_o of_o the_o same_o saint_n him_n that_o dwell_v not_o in_o jesus_n christ_n and_o in_o who_o christ_n dwell_v not_o do_v not_o indeed_o eat_v his_o flesh_n although_o he_o eat_v and_o drink_v the_o sacrament_n of_o so_o great_a a_o thing_n unto_o his_o damnation_n b._n ibid._n p._n 522._o b._n unto_o which_o word_n in_o all_o appearance_n berengarius_fw-la have_v regard_v when_o he_o say_v in_o his_o letter_n unto_o richard_n if_o the_o thing_n be_v so_o how_o shall_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o eucharist_n come_v to_o my_o knowledge_n which_o be_v in_o the_o write_n of_o bishop_n fulbert_n of_o glorious_a memory_n 510._o tom_n 2._o spicil_n d'ach._n p._n 510._o and_o which_o some_o esteem_n to_o be_v of_o this_o bishop_n but_o it_o be_v of_o st._n austin_n if_o it_o be_v far_o consider_v that_o he_o declare_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v ascend_v into_o heaven_n and_o that_o he_o have_v leave_v we_o the_o sacrament_n c._n ep._n 1._o ad_fw-la adcodat_n p._n 437._o c._n as_o a_o pledge_n of_o his_o presence_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o what_o we_o receive_v in_o the_o sacrament_n as_o of_o a_o thing_n which_o be_v break_v into_o very_o small_a bit_n and_o whereof_o a_o little_a portion_n be_v receive_v and_o that_o he_o distinguish_v as_o ratramn_v do_v 441._o id._n epist_n 2._o p._n 440_o 441._o and_o in_o the_o same_o word_n the_o sacrament_n which_o he_o call_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n from_o his_o true_a body_n if_o i_o say_v all_o these_o thing_n be_v well_o consider_v it_o must_v present_o be_v conclude_v that_o he_o be_v contrary_a unto_o paschas_fw-la yet_o nevertheless_o i_o will_v not_o affirm_v that_o he_o exact_o follow_v the_o opinion_n of_o his_o adversary_n not_o because_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o transfusion_n and_o change_n of_o the_o bread_n into_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o beside_o that_o 438._o id._n ep._n 1._o p_o 437_o 438._o he_o call_v this_o change_n a_o change_n of_o dignity_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o quality_n which_o the_o ancient_n often_o design_v by_o the_o name_n of_o substance_n as_o have_v be_v show_v he_o compare_v the_o change_n which_o happen_v in_o the_o eucharist_n unto_o that_o which_o come_v unto_o the_o manna_n in_o the_o wilderness_n and_o unto_o that_o which_o come_v unto_o man_n in_o baptism_n and_o that_o he_o testify_v that_o there_o be_v also_o a_o transfusion_n of_o believer_n into_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n ibid._n ibid._n but_o i_o judge_v so_o because_o he_o seem_v to_o i_o to_o have_v embrace_v the_o opinion_n of_o remy_n of_o auxerr_n which_o be_v the_o same_o of_o john_n damascen_n who_o teach_v not_o that_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o symbol_n be_v abolish_v but_o that_o they_o be_v unite_v unto_o the_o divinity_n to_o make_v one_o body_n with_o the_o natural_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n as_o have_v be_v full_o show_v and_o that_o these_o be_v the_o thought_n of_o fulbert_n it_o appear_v if_o i_o mistake_v not_o by_o what_o he_o say_v that_o the_o pledge_n which_o our_o saviour_n have_v leave_v we_o be_v not_o the_o symbol_n of_o a_o empty_a mystery_n but_o the_o true_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n compaginante_fw-la spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-la 437._o id._n ibid._n p._n 437._o or_o as_o remy_n speak_v conjungente_fw-it that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o holy_a spirit_n unite_v join_v and_o knit_v the_o sacrament_n unto_o the_o true_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o unite_n it_o unto_o the_o divinity_n let_v the_o reader_n judge_n if_o i_o use_v any_o violence_n unto_o the_o word_n of_o fulbert_n and_o if_o i_o vary_v from_o his_o meaning_n about_o the_o time_n that_o fulbert_n of_o chartres_n flourish_v bernon_n abbot_n of_o augy_a write_v his_o treatise_n of_o thing_n which_o concern_v the_o mass_n to_o wit_n about_o the_o year_n 1030._o and_o fulbert_n die_v in_o 1027._o in_o this_o treatise_n he_o speak_v of_o make_v and_o confecrate_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o the_o lord_n pat._n cap._n 1._o &_o 2._o t._n 10_o bibl._n pat._n but_o the_o real_a body_n say_v some_o and_o the_o proper_a blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n not_o be_v possible_a to_o be_v make_v because_o it_o be_v make_v a_o thousand_o year_n before_o bernon_n write_v nor_o be_v sanctify_v because_o it_o be_v always_o holy_a it_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v understand_v of_o the_o sacrament_n 1._o cap._n 1._o and_o he_o show_v it_o plain_o when_o he_o say_v that_o this_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v break_v which_o can_v be_v understand_v of_o his_o true_a body_n which_o be_v not_o subject_a unto_o this_o accident_n and_o that_o moreover_o he_o declare_v 5._o cap._n 5._o that_o we_o be_v refresh_v with_o the_o wine_n which_o be_v in_o the_o cup_n in_o type_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n nevertheless_o the_o opinion_n of_o paschas_fw-la establish_v itself_o by_o degree_n bruno_n bishop_n of_o anger_n be_v and_o berengarius_fw-la bear_v at_o tours_n but_o archdeacon_n and_o treasurer_n of_o the_o church_n of_o anger_n be_v a_o dignity_n which_o in_o former_a time_n be_v not_o confer_v but_o upon_o person_n of_o worth_n and_o learning_n bruno_n i_o say_v and_o berengarius_fw-la not_o endure_v that_o the_o opinion_n of_o paschas_fw-la which_o they_o look_v upon_o as_o a_o innovation_n of_o the_o ancient_a faith_n shall_v get_v possession_n of_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o people_n oppose_v it_o public_o teach_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n do_v not_o lose_v their_o substance_n by_o consecration_n to_o become_v the_o real_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o they_o only_o become_v by_o the_o blessing_n of_o sanctification_n the_o sacrament_n of_o this_o body_n and_o blood_n the_o truth_n be_v bruno_n suffer_v himself_o to_o be_v overcome_v with_o fear_n become_v silent_a a_o little_a after_o for_o say_v some_o it_o often_o happen_v upon_o these_o occasion_n that_o man_n harken_v to_o the_o counsel_n of_o the_o flesh_n rather_o than_o unto_o those_o of_o the_o spirit_n but_o as_o for_o berengarius_fw-la he_o have_v more_o strength_n and_o courage_n and_o oppose_v himself_o with_o more_o resolution_n and_o vigour_n unto_o the_o settle_n of_o the_o doctrine_n which_o paschas_fw-la begin_v to_o teach_v in_o the_o ix_o century_n but_o without_o any_o great_a success_n until_o the_o xi_o wherein_o it_o also_o find_v a_o great_a many_o opposer_n i_o be_o not_o ignorant_a that_o some_o enemy_n of_o berengarius_fw-la have_v endeavour_v to_o slander_v he_o to_o render_v his_o belief_n the_o more_o odious_a but_o the_o truth_n be_v he_o be_v repute_v to_o be_v a_o very_a learned_a man_n ground_v in_o philosophy_n and_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o liberal_a art_n and_o moreover_o of_o a_o holy_a and_o unblameable_a life_n a_o fragment_n of_o the_o history_n of_o france_n from_o the_o time_n of_o king_n robert_n 20_o tom_n 4._o histor_n franc._n the_o scripror_n eccles_n platina_n in_o joan._n 15._o sabellic_n enead_n 9_o l._n 2._o chron._n tit_n 16._o c._n 1._o §_o 20_o unto_o the_o death_n of_o philip_n say_v that_o his_o name_n be_v famous_a among_o the_o professor_n of_o divine_a philosophy_n sigebert_n say_v that_o he_o be_v illustrious_a for_o the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o liberal_a art_n and_o of_o logic_n platina_n and_o sabellicus_n reckon_v he_o among_o those_o which_o render_v themselves_o famous_a by_o their_o piety_n and_o learning_n bergomas_n in_o the_o supplement_n of_o chronicle_n upon_o the_o year_n 1049._o observe_n that_o he_o pass_v a_o long_a time_n in_o the_o judgement_n of_o man_n to_o be_v eminent_a in_o learning_n and_o in_o holiness_n therefore_o the_o archbishop_n antonine_n declare_v 747._o tom._n 2._o spicil_n p._n 747._o that_o he_o be_v very_o learned_a and_o the_o friar_n clarius_n in_o his_o chronicle_n of_o st._n peter_n of_o sans_o give_v he_o these_o two_o epithet_n of_o admirable_a philosopher_n and_o lover_n of_o the_o poor_a but_o in_o fine_a the_o belief_n which_o he_o maintain_v upon_o the_o subject_a of_o the_o eucharist_n and_o which_o be_v direct_o contrary_a unto_o that_o of_o paschas_fw-la find_v the_o people_n so_o dispose_v to_o entertain_v it_o or_o rather_o to_o declare_v open_o for_o it_o so_o that_o in_o all_o
part_n it_o be_v public_o profess_v and_o this_o easy_o persuade_v i_o that_o berengarius_fw-la do_v not_o so_o much_o infuse_v this_o opinion_n into_o they_o as_o he_o encourage_v they_o by_o his_o example_n to_o publish_v it_o by_o rouse_a they_o up_o from_o the_o stupidness_n wherein_o they_o have_v lie_v for_o some_o time_n for_o have_v this_o people_n believe_v no_o more_o of_o the_o eucharist_n than_o just_a what_o berengarius_fw-la have_v teach_v this_o doctrine_n can_v scarce_o have_v make_v so_o great_a a_o progress_n in_o so_o little_a a_o time_n but_o as_o it_o be_v instill_a into_o they_o from_o father_n to_o son_n berengarius_fw-la have_v no_o soon_o open_v his_o mouth_n but_o that_o they_o embrace_v it_o not_o regard_v the_o fear_n that_o have_v till_o then_o discourage_v they_o see_v the_o contradiction_n it_o find_v in_o the_o world_n whilst_o that_o of_o paschas_fw-la therein_o receive_v favour_n and_o encouragement_n but_o because_o the_o enemy_n of_o this_o doctrine_n have_v look_v upon_o berengarius_fw-la to_o have_v be_v the_o true_a author_n of_o it_o they_o have_v tax_v he_o of_o infect_v with_o the_o venom_n of_o his_o heresy_n all_o those_o which_o by_o his_o example_n have_v the_o courage_n to_o make_v profession_n of_o it_o it_o be_v with_o this_o prejudice_n that_o matthew_n of_o westminster_n say_v 87._o ad_fw-la ann._n 1●_n 87._o that_o he_o have_v almost_o infect_v all_o france_n italy_n and_o england_n matthew_n paris_n and_o william_n of_o malmesbury_n say_v 3._o matt._n paris_n in_o willielm_n ii_o will._n malm_n 6._o in_o willielm_n l._n l._n 3._o that_o all_o france_n be_v full_a of_o his_o doctrine_n so_o it_o be_v that_o durandus_fw-la of_o troarn_v a_o ancient_a monastery_n in_o normandy_n also_o say_v in_o a_o treatise_n which_o he_o make_v of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n wherein_o he_o oppose_v the_o doctrine_n teach_v by_o berengarius_fw-la it_o can_v be_v doubt_v but_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o berengarius_fw-la be_v the_o same_o with_o that_o teach_v by_o several_a in_o the_o ix_o century_n which_o oppose_v the_o opinion_n of_o paschas_fw-la as_o novelty_n which_o until_o then_o have_v not_o be_v hear_v of_o in_o the_o church_n if_o then_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o adversary_n of_o paschas_fw-la be_v the_o ancient_a belief_n of_o christian_n as_o we_o suppose_v have_v be_v sufficient_o prove_v it_o must_v be_v grant_v that_o berengarius_fw-la do_v not_o depart_v from_o it_o and_o that_o those_o which_o follow_v he_o have_v be_v of_o old_a instruct_v therein_o therefore_o as_o soon_o as_o he_o begin_v to_o bublish_v it_o they_o know_v it_o and_o without_o any_o difficulty_n make_v profession_n of_o it_o but_o if_o berengarius_fw-la have_v friend_n he_o also_o have_v enemy_n if_o he_o have_v follower_n he_o have_v also_o those_o which_o oppose_v he_o the_o first_o that_o attempt_v to_o write_v against_o he_o seem_v to_o be_v adelman_n which_o from_o theologal_a of_o the_o church_n of_o liege_n become_v bishop_n of_o bress_n he_o have_v study_v with_o berengarius_fw-la under_o fulbert_n bishop_n of_o chartres_n and_o have_v hear_v what_o berengarius_fw-la teach_v of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n he_o write_v he_o a_o letter_n wherein_o have_v renew_v the_o memory_n of_o their_o old_a friendship_n he_o show_v that_o it_o be_v report_v of_o he_o that_o he_o teach_v 167._o tom._n 3._o bibl._n pat._n ult_n ed._n p._n 167._o that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v not_o the_o true_a body_n nor_o the_o real_a blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o the_o figure_n and_o resemblance_n adelman_n endeavour_v to_o refute_v this_o doctrine_n but_o by_o reason_n which_o appear_v weak_a and_o some_o also_o that_o do_v not_o very_o well_o agree_v with_o his_o hypothesis_n but_o berengarius_fw-la answer_v he_o in_o such_o a_o manner_n as_o he_o may_v see_v that_o he_o do_v not_o much_o value_n his_o reproof_n and_o that_o he_o be_v resolve_v always_o to_o defend_v his_o belief_n call_v that_o which_o be_v contrary_a unto_o he_o 192._o apud_fw-la lanfran_n t._n 6._o bibl_n pat._n p._n 192._o the_o folly_n of_o the_o people_n of_o paschas_fw-la and_o of_o lanfranc_n by_o which_o word_n he_o show_v that_o he_o look_v upon_o paschas_fw-la as_o the_o author_n of_o this_o novelty_n and_o lanfranc_n as_o the_o promoter_n of_o it_o and_o that_o both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o endeavour_v to_o infuse_v it_o into_o the_o people_n to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o their_o ancient_a faith_n for_o berengarius_fw-la pretend_v that_o his_o doctrine_n be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o that_o that_o of_o his_o adversary_n be_v not_o know_v but_o since_o paschas_fw-la his_o time_n who_o have_v invent_v it_o in_o his_o cell_n bring_v it_o forth_o in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 818._o berengarius_fw-la have_v thus_o silence_v adelman_n 319._o tom._n 3._o bibl._n pat._n p._n 319._o his_o ancient_a fellow-student_n durandus_fw-la bishop_n of_o liege_n and_o by_o consequence_n adelman_n bishop_n sound_v a_o alarm_n in_o a_o letter_n he_o write_v unto_o king_n henry_n against_o bruno_n bishop_n of_o anger_n be_v and_o against_o berengarius_fw-la his_o archdeacon_n as_o against_o person_n which_o teach_v that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n but_o the_o figure_n of_o his_o body_n which_o this_o prelate_n call_v renew_v of_o ancient_a heresy_n and_o to_o show_v with_o what_o spirit_n this_o bishop_n be_v act_v he_o exhort_v the_o king_n to_o deliberate_v of_o their_o punishment_n rather_o than_o to_o hear_v they_o in_o council_n moreover_o i_o have_v call_v this_o bishop_n of_o liege_n durandus_fw-la after_o baronius_n and_o those_o which_o have_v give_v we_o the_o library_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n but_o according_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o history_n it_o can_v be_v so_o because_o durandus_fw-la be_v dead_a before_o bruno_n be_v bishop_n of_o anger_n be_v and_o indeed_o durandus_fw-la die_v anno_fw-la 1025._o according_o to_o segebert_n and_o bruno_n attain_v not_o unto_o the_o episcopacy_n until_o 1047._o of_o necessity_n then_o this_o bishop_n of_o liege_n must_v be_v some_o other_o than_o durandus_fw-la and_o probable_o it_o may_v be_v dietuvin_n who_o be_v make_v bishop_n of_o liege_n in_o the_o year_n 1048._o about_o which_o time_n he_o and_o adelman_n may_v have_v write_v the_o letter_n above_o mention_v durandus_fw-la abbot_n of_o troam_n in_o normandy_n make_v some_o mention_n at_o the_o end_n of_o his_o treatise_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n of_o a_o council_n assemble_v at_o paris_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o king_n against_o berengarius_fw-la and_o his_o follower_n where_o the_o doctrine_n of_o berengarius_fw-la absent_a and_o unheard_a be_v condemn_v and_o it_o be_v there_o conclude_v that_o he_o and_o those_o of_o his_o judgement_n shall_v be_v prosecute_v in_o all_o part_n and_o that_o they_o shall_v be_v besiege_v where_o they_o shall_v be_v find_v assemble_v to_o force_v they_o to_o renounce_v their_o belief_n or_o be_v take_v and_o put_v to_o death_n a_o remedy_n very_o contrary_a unto_o the_o temper_n of_o the_o gospel_n and_o unto_o the_o mildness_n of_o the_o religion_n of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o after_o all_o this_o council_n of_o paris_n be_v no_o other_o than_o a_o fiction_n of_o the_o author_n brain_n for_o what_o likelihood_n be_v there_o that_o lanfranc_n who_o write_v against_o berengarius_fw-la after_o this_o pretend_a council_n will_v have_v pass_v it_o over_o in_o silence_n have_v so_o exact_o mention_v all_o the_o council_n which_o be_v assemble_v against_o berengarius_fw-la in_o some_o of_o which_o he_o be_v present_v himself_o moreover_o multiplici_fw-la anonymus_fw-la de_fw-la damnatione_fw-la berengarii_fw-la multiplici_fw-la father_n chifflet_n have_v print_v a_o anonymous_n author_n which_o specify_v all_o the_o synod_n wherein_o the_o belief_n of_o berengarius_fw-la be_v condemn_v at_o the_o last_o of_o which_o himself_o be_v present_a at_o rome_n anno_fw-la 1079._o under_o gregory_n the_o seven_o without_o make_v any_o mention_n of_o that_o of_o paris_n whereunto_o may_v be_v add_v that_o the_o date_n and_o character_n of_o the_o time_n do_v not_o agree_v with_o the_o truth_n of_o history_n cardinal_n baronius_n in_o his_o annal_n 1035._o ad_fw-la ann_n 1035._o think_v king_n henry_n have_v thought_n of_o assemble_v a_o synod_n against_o berengarius_fw-la but_o that_o he_o be_v hinder_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o liege_n his_o letter_n which_o i_o can_v believe_v after_o all_o that_o have_v be_v say_v on_o this_o matter_n we_o be_v inform_v by_o lanfranc_n that_o in_o the_o year_n 1050._o pope_n leo_n the_o nine_o assemble_v two_o council_n one_o at_o rome_n where_o berengarius_fw-la 193._o lanfranc_n de_fw-fr eucharist_n sacram_fw-la t._n 6._o bibl._n pat._n p._n 193._o without_o be_v cite_v or_o hear_v be_v condemn_v upon_o letter_n which_o he_o write_v unto_o lanfranc_n and_o
perfidious_a stercoranist_n say_v he_o you_o believe_v that_o the_o participation_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n break_v the_o fast_a of_o love_n and_o ecclesiastical_a abstinence_n believe_v absolute_o that_o the_o heavenly_a food_n as_o well_o as_o the_o earthly_a be_v send_v out_o backward_o by_o the_o stink_a and_o sordid_a ejection_n of_o the_o belly_n alger_n confirm_v the_o testimony_n of_o humbert_n 320._o algerus_n de_fw-fr sacram_fw-la l._n 2._o c._n 1._o t._n 6_o bibl._n pat._n p._n 320._o and_o declare_v positive_o that_o the_o greek_n be_v of_o the_o opinion_n of_o those_o which_o he_o call_v stercoranists_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o those_o which_o hold_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n do_v remain_v after_o consecration_n and_o that_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o it_o it_o be_v subject_a unto_o the_o same_o fate_n of_o our_o common_a food_n which_o be_v exact_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o adversary_n of_o paschas_fw-la and_o afterward_o of_o berengarius_fw-la and_o his_o follower_n 5●_n cellot_n in_o append_v miscel_n opusc_fw-la 7._o p._n 5●_n father_n cellot_n in_o his_o note_n upon_o a_o anonymous_n treatise_n in_o the_o appendix_n of_o his_o history_n of_o gotteschal_n confirm_v the_o same_o thing_n say_v that_o the_o error_n of_o the_o greek_n consist_v in_o their_o say_n that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a fast_o be_v break_v by_o receive_v of_o the_o eucharist_n and_o that_o they_o believe_v the_o sacrament_n be_v digest_v and_o that_o it_o be_v evacuate_v like_a say_v he_o unto_o the_o stercoranist_n which_o we_o have_v in_o detestation_n the_o same_o cardinal_n de_fw-fr blanch-selva_a 247._o humbertus_fw-la ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la p._n 247._o also_o reproach_v they_o that_o they_o take_v not_o heed_n of_o the_o crumb_n of_o the_o holy_a bread_n which_o fall_n to_o the_o ground_n either_o in_o break_v or_o receive_v of_o it_o whereunto_o he_o add_v some_o among_o you_o do_v eat_v the_o remainder_n of_o the_o oblation_n like_o common_a bread_n sometime_o even_o unto_o excess_n and_o if_o they_o can_v eat_v all_o they_o bury_v it_o or_o cast_v it_o into_o a_o well_o all_o which_o thing_n do_v not_o well_o accord_v with_o the_o doctrine_n nor_o with_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o latin_n but_o this_o be_v not_o yet_o all_o we_o have_v to_o say_v of_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n in_o the_o xi_o century_n in_o the_o memorial_n of_o sigismond_n liber_n touch_v the_o affair_n of_o muscovy_n print_v at_o basil_n anno_fw-la 1571._o there_o be_v a_o letter_n of_o one_o john_n metropolitan_a of_o russia_n unto_o the_o archbishop_n of_o rome_n write_v as_o near_o as_o i_o can_v judge_v in_o this_o century_n or_o it_o may_v be_v afterward_o for_o he_o make_v some_o mention_n of_o the_o contention_n betwixt_o the_o latin_n and_o the_o greek_n touch_v leaven_v or_o unleavened_a bread_n in_o this_o letter_n he_o very_o ample_o declare_v that_o what_o our_o lord_n give_v his_o disciple_n be_v bread_n 32._o sigismond_n libre_fw-la r●rum_fw-la moscovit_fw-la p._n 32._o he_o do_v not_o give_v they_o wafer_n say_v he_o but_o bread_n when_o he_o say_v see_v the_o bread_n which_o i_o give_v unto_o you_o leo_fw-la allatius_n in_o his_o diatribe_n of_o the_o simeon_n make_v mention_n of_o one_o simeon_n perfect_a of_o the_o monastery_n of_o st._n mamant_n in_o xerocerco_n who_o flourish_v in_o the_o middle_n of_o the_o xi_o century_n in_o great_a reputation_n of_o holiness_n and_o learning_n he_o be_v indeed_o accuse_v of_o hold_v some_o error_n concern_v the_o vision_n of_o god_n in_o this_o life_n and_o of_o the_o union_n of_o believer_n with_o he_o but_o that_o hinder_v not_o but_o that_o he_o be_v follow_v by_o most_o of_o the_o greek_n the_o error_n now_o speak_v of_o do_v not_o regard_v the_o sacrament_n and_o have_v no_o relation_n unto_o the_o eucharist_n therefore_o although_o he_o have_v some_o enemy_n yet_o neither_o he_o nor_o his_o follower_n be_v ever_o tax_v to_o have_v err_v in_o the_o matter_n of_o the_o sacrament_n this_o simeon_n at_o the_o time_n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o berengarius_fw-la be_v condemn_v at_o verceil_n teach_v in_o the_o east_n that_o the_o sacrament_n be_v one_o thing_n and_o that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v another_o thing_n and_o that_o those_o which_o participate_v unworthy_o of_o the_o sacrament_n can_v not_o receive_v the_o body_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o fine_a allatius_n make_v up_o the_o account_n of_o the_o work_n of_o this_o simeon_n 163._o allatius_n de_fw-fr simeonibus_fw-la p._n 163._o speak_v of_o a_o certain_a hymn_n the_o title_n whereof_o be_v that_o whosoever_o live_v without_o the_o knowledge_n of_o god_n be_v dead_a in_o the_o midst_n of_o those_o which_o live_v in_o the_o knowledge_n of_o he_o and_o that_o those_o which_o participate_v unworthy_o of_o the_o mystery_n can_v receive_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n it_o be_v to_o be_v wish_v that_o allatius_n have_v give_v we_o the_o whole_a hymn_n as_o well_o as_o the_o argument_n but_o however_o this_o argument_n contain_v a_o doctrine_n manifest_o contrary_a unto_o that_o of_o the_o latin_n in_o favour_n of_o who_o by_o consequence_n it_o be_v very_o unlike_o that_o theophylact_fw-mi shall_v declare_v see_v he_o be_v of_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o live_v in_o the_o xi_o century_n at_o which_o time_n the_o greek_n believe_v and_o teach_v what_o be_v above_o write_v yet_o let_v every_o body_n judge_v sincere_o and_o free_o without_o any_o other_o interest_n than_o that_o of_o truth_n which_o i_o endeavour_v to_o represent_v in_o this_o history_n which_o inform_v we_o that_o it_o be_v in_o this_o age_n that_o they_o begin_v to_o introduce_v the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n and_o to_o change_v the_o form_n of_o the_o bread_n of_o the_o eucharist_n in_o the_o church_n of_o the_o west_n as_o have_v be_v discourse_v at_o large_a in_o the_o first_o part._n chap._n xviii_o a_o continuation_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o eucharist_n or_o the_o state_n of_o the_o xii_o and_o xiii_o century_n the_o opinion_n of_o paschas_fw-la have_v be_v in_o fine_a public_o authorize_v in_o the_o xi_o century_n there_o need_v no_o far_a enquiry_n be_v make_v to_o know_v if_o it_o obtain_v the_o victory_n over_o its_o adversary_n the_o thing_n be_v without_o any_o difficulty_n the_o establish_n of_o this_o doctrine_n be_v a_o manifest_a condemnation_n of_o that_o which_o be_v opposite_a unto_o it_o it_o will_v suffice_v then_o to_o understand_v what_o be_v the_o consequence_n and_o to_o what_o effect_n so_o many_o decree_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o opinion_n of_o paschas_fw-la and_o contrary_a unto_o that_o of_o which_o berengarius_fw-la and_o his_o follower_n so_o stout_o maintain_v do_v work_v upon_o the_o mind_n of_o man_n for_o during_o all_o the_o xi_o century_n the_o mind_n of_o man_n be_v divide_v and_o notwithstanding_o the_o decision_n of_o several_a council_n there_o be_v in_o all_o part_n infinite_a number_n of_o people_n which_o make_v open_a profession_n of_o the_o doctrine_n which_o berengarius_fw-la teach_v and_o which_o be_v exact_o that_o of_o the_o adversary_n of_o paschas_fw-la therefore_o the_o very_a enemy_n of_o berengarius_fw-la tell_v we_o in_o the_o forego_n chapter_n that_o all_o france_n italy_n and_o england_n be_v full_a of_o his_o doctrine_n in_o fine_a the_o party_n which_o reject_v the_o determination_n of_o gregory_n the_o vii_o against_o berengarius_fw-la be_v so_o considerable_a that_o urban_n the_o second_o be_v constrain_v to_o condemn_v anew_o the_o opinion_n of_o berengarius_fw-la in_o another_o council_n hold_v at_o plaisance_n anno_fw-la 1095._o 1095._o berthold_n ad_fw-la aunum_fw-la 1095._o as_o bertholdus_n have_v observe_v in_o his_o appendix_n unto_o herman_n contract_n for_o relate_v all_o thing_n that_o be_v translate_v in_o this_o council_n of_o plaisance_n which_o be_v celebrate_v in_o his_o time_n he_o say_v among_o other_o thing_n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o berengarius_fw-la be_v there_o again_o condemn_v after_o have_v be_v so_o several_a time_n before_o but_o as_o the_o former_a determination_n can_v not_o impose_v silence_n upon_o the_o disciple_n of_o berengarius_fw-la i_o mean_v those_o which_o embrace_v the_o same_o doctrine_n which_o oblige_v urban_n to_o condemn_v they_o again_o in_o the_o year_n 1095._o seven_o year_n after_o the_o decease_n of_o berengarius_fw-la so_o also_o the_o condemnation_n of_o urban_n the_o second_o have_v not_o power_n sufficient_a to_o silence_v they_o see_v that_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o xii_o century_n bruno_n archbishop_n of_o treves_n expel_v great_a number_n of_o they_o out_o of_o his_o diocese_n as_o be_v testify_v by_o mounseur_fw-fr de_fw-mi thou_o in_o the_o epistle_n dedicatory_a of_o his_o history_n it_o be_v true_a that_o instead_o of_o the_o year_n 1060._o whereto_o he_o assign_v the_o action_n of_o this_o prelate_n it_o
shall_v be_v read_v 1106._o because_o bruno_n be_v not_o make_v archbishop_n of_o treves_n till_o after_o the_o year_n 1100._o bishop_n usher_z make_v mention_n of_o the_o author_n of_o the_o act_n of_o bruno_n who_o be_v present_a and_o be_v a_o manuscript_n to_o be_v see_v in_o england_n and_o he_o say_v that_o this_o author_n speak_v of_o assembly_n which_o be_v make_v in_o the_o diocese_n of_o treves_n by_o those_o which_o deny_v the_o change_n of_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 90._o walden_v t._n 2._o c._n 90._o it_o be_v about_o this_o time_n that_o honorius_n priest_n and_o theologal_n of_o the_o church_n of_o autun_n be_v say_v to_o flourish_v which_o thomas_n waldensis_n allege_v against_o wickliff_n as_o a_o disciple_n and_o follower_n of_o the_o heresy_n of_o berengarius_fw-la which_o he_o himself_o confess_v to_o agree_v with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o rabanus_n archbishop_n of_o mayance_n and_o great_a adversary_n unto_o paschas_fw-la when_o he_o say_v that_o honorius_n est_fw-fr de_fw-fr secta_fw-la panitarum_fw-la rabani_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o sect_n of_o those_o which_o believe_v with_o rabanus_n that_o the_o eucharist_n be_v bread_n in_o substance_n fit_a to_o nourish_v the_o body_n but_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o efficacy_n it_o be_v true_a waldensis_n do_v not_o particular_o name_n honorius_n but_o he_o mean_v he_o so_o clear_o by_o the_o entrance_n of_o his_o treatise_n and_o by_o the_o passage_n he_o allege_v and_o which_o be_v therein_o now_o to_o be_v see_v that_o no_o body_n can_v doubt_v but_o that_o it_o be_v of_o honorius_n he_o speak_v neither_o do_v i_o find_v that_o any_o be_v at_o variance_n hereupon_o the_o first_o testimony_n produce_v by_o waldensis_n and_o which_o wickliff_n allege_v for_o the_o defence_n of_o his_o opinion_n ●6_n honorius_n augustod_n in_o gemma_fw-la animae_fw-la l._n 1._o c._n ●6_n be_v set_v down_o in_o these_o term_n it_o be_v say_v that_o former_o the_o priest_n receive_v flower_n from_o each_o house_n or_o family_n which_o the_o greek_n do_v still_o practise_v and_o that_o of_o this_o flower_n they_o make_v the_o bread_n of_o our_o lord_n which_o they_o offer_v for_o the_o people_n and_o after_o have_v consecrate_v it_o they_o distribute_v it_o unto_o they_o the_o second_o mention_v by_o waldensis_n be_v borrow_v of_o rabanus_n 111._o id._n l._n 1._o c._n 111._o and_o be_v thus_o read_v the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v receive_v by_o the_o mouth_n be_v turn_v into_o the_o nourishment_n of_o the_o body_n but_o the_o virtue_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v that_o whereby_o the_o inward_a man_n be_v satisfy_v and_o by_o this_o virtue_n be_v acquire_v eternal_a life_n the_o same_o author_n say_v again_o 63._o id._n ib._n c._n 63._o that_o the_o host_n be_v break_v because_o the_o bread_n of_o angel_n be_v break_v for_o we_o upon_o the_o cross_n that_o the_o bishop_n bite_v part_n of_o it_o that_o he_o divide_v it_o into_o three_o part_n 64._o id._n c._n 64._o that_o it_o be_v not_o receive_v whole_a but_o break_v into_o three_o bit_n 85._o ibid._n c._n 85._o and_o that_o when_o the_o bread_n be_v put_v into_o the_o wine_n it_o be_v represent_v that_o the_o soul_n of_o our_o lord_n return_v into_o his_o body_n and_o he_o call_v it_o 63._o ibid._n c._n 63._o to_o break_v the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n when_o he_o observe_v that_o the_o sub-deacon_n receive_v from_o the_o deacon_n the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o that_o he_o carry_v it_o to_o the_o priest_n to_o break_v it_o unto_o the_o people_n all_o man_n do_v confess_v that_o the_o glorify_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n can_v be_v break_v and_o divide_v into_o part_n of_o necessity_n he_o must_v then_o speak_v of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v call_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n not_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o accident_n which_o be_v never_o qualify_v with_o this_o name_n by_o the_o ancient_n but_o in_o regard_n of_o its_o substance_n therefore_o honorius_n declare_v plain_o that_o it_o be_v bread_n when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o consecrate_a bread_n be_v distribute_v unto_o the_o people_n and_o that_o the_o bread_n be_v put_v into_o the_o wine_n and_o so_o far_o he_o favour_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o protestant_n in_o follow_v the_o judgement_n of_o berengarius_fw-la and_o of_o rabanus_n as_o be_v testify_v by_o thomas_n waldensis_n a_o enemy_n both_o of_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o and_o by_o consequence_n of_o honorius_n nevertheless_o there_o be_v other_o place_n in_o the_o treatise_n of_o this_o author_n from_o whence_o the_o roman_a catholic_n strive_v to_o draw_v advantage_n for_o example_n from_o these_o word_n the_o name_n of_o mystery_n be_v use_v 106._o ibid._n c._n 106._o when_o one_o thing_n be_v see_v and_o another_o thing_n be_v understand_v the_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n be_v see_v but_o it_o be_v believe_v to_o be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n it_o be_v true_a that_o all_o christian_n confess_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n after_o consecration_n be_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o author_n not_o specify_v if_o it_o be_v in_o substance_n as_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n do_v teach_v or_o in_o virtue_n as_o the_o protestant_n which_o be_v call_v calvinist_n do_v say_v i_o do_v not_o think_v that_o either_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o can_v draw_v any_o advantage_n from_o these_o word_n but_o beside_o these_o there_o be_v yet_o other_o which_o seem_v to_o be_v more_o favourable_a unto_o the_o hypothesis_n of_o the_o latin_n we_o may_v put_v in_o this_o order_n what_o he_o say_v 34._o ibid._n c._n 34._o that_o the_o bread_n be_v change_v into_o flesh_n and_o that_o the_o wine_n turn_v into_o blood_n and_o elsewhere_o that_o as_o the_o world_n be_v make_v of_o nothing_o by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n 105._o ibid._n c._n 105._o so_o by_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n the_o species_n of_o these_o thing_n he_o mean_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v true_o change_v into_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n it_o must_v be_v confess_v that_o have_v we_o only_o these_o two_o last_o passage_n of_o honorius_n the_o latin_a church_n will_v undoubted_o have_v cause_n to_o boast_v over_o those_o which_o reject_v her_o belief_n but_o that_o which_o hinder_v that_o she_o can_v draw_v all_o the_o advantage_n from_o it_o she_o desire_v be_v that_o the_o protestant_n rely_v in_o the_o first_o place_n upon_o the_o declaration_n of_o thomas_n waldensis_n who_o high_o condemn_v the_o opinion_n of_o rabanus_n and_o of_o berengarius_fw-la as_o contrary_a unto_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o latin_n do_v nevertheless_o ingenuous_o confess_v that_o honorius_n of_o autun_n follow_v the_o opinion_n of_o these_o two_o man_n who_o doctrine_n he_o condemn_v in_o the_o second_o place_n inasmuch_o as_o the_o first_o testimony_n instance_a in_o can_v receive_v no_o favourable_a interpretation_n for_o the_o hypothesis_n of_o roman_a catholic_n whereas_o the_o late_a whereof_o they_o pretend_v to_o take_v hold_n may_v convenient_o be_v explain_v in_o a_o way_n which_o may_v no_o way_n prejudice_v the_o doctrine_n of_o those_o call_v calvinist_n who_o say_v that_o the_o conversion_n and_o the_o change_n speak_v of_o by_o honorius_n be_v not_o a_o change_n of_o substance_n but_o a_o change_n of_o efficacy_n and_o virtue_n inasmuch_o as_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n do_v become_v by_o sanctification_n the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n but_o sacrament_n in_o their_o lawful_a celebration_n accompany_v with_o all_o the_o virtue_n and_o with_o all_o the_o efficacy_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n so_o that_o for_o that_o reason_n it_o be_v say_v that_o they_o be_v change_v into_o this_o efficacy_n and_o into_o this_o virtue_n according_a to_o the_o language_n of_o theodotus_n of_o st._n cyril_n of_o alexandria_n of_o theophilact_fw-mi etc._n etc._n allege_v to_o confirm_v their_o interpretation_n 106._o ibid._n c._n 106._o what_o be_v say_v by_o the_o same_o honorius_n that_o jesus_n christ_n change_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n into_o the_o sacrament_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n which_o st._n isidore_n archbishop_n of_o sevil_n venerable_a bede_n and_o rabanus_n archbishop_n of_o mayans_n have_v say_v before_o he_o as_o have_v be_v mention_v in_o some_o part_n of_o this_o history_n and_o that_o in_o speak_v of_o divide_v the_o host_n into_o three_o part_n 64._o ibid._n c._n 64._o he_o declare_v that_o that_o which_o be_v put_v into_o the_o cup_n be_v the_o glorify_a body_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o that_o which_o the_o priest_n eat_v be_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o church_n which_o yet_o be_v militant_a here_o on_o earth_n
decission_n of_o pope_n and_o their_o council_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o paschas_fw-la separate_v themselves_o open_o from_o their_o communion_n and_o give_v their_o reason_n for_o so_o do_v in_o a_o book_n which_o they_o publish_v to_o that_o purpose_n in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n wherein_o they_o make_v this_o declaration_n of_o their_o faith_n touch_v the_o eucharist_n 4._o hist_o de_fw-fr albigensis_n de_fw-fr paul_n perrin_n l._n 3._o c._n 4._o the_o eat_n of_o the_o sacramental_a bread_n be_v the_o eat_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n figurative_o jesus_n christ_n have_v say_v as_o often_o as_o you_o do_v this_o do_v it_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o this_o book_n as_o be_v observe_v by_o he_o that_o insert_v it_o whole_o in_o his_o history_n of_o the_o albigensis_n and_o the_o waldensis_n be_v take_v from_o a_o manuscript_n wherein_o be_v contain_v several_a sermon_n of_o the_o barbe_n so_o it_o be_v that_o those_o people_n call_v their_o pastor_n it_o be_v date_v in_o the_o year_n 1120._o which_o i_o find_v nothing_o strange_a when_o i_o consider_v that_o in_o the_o year_n 1119._o pope_n calixtus_n the_o second_o assemble_v a_o council_n at_o tholouse_n in_o his_o own_o presence_n wherein_o certain_a heretic_n be_v condemn_v who_o reject_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n that_o be_v to_o say_v which_o in_o all_o likelihood_n do_v not_o believe_v what_o the_o latin_a church_n believe_v we_o be_v oblige_v for_o the_o canon_n of_o this_o council_n unto_o mounseur_fw-fr baluze_fw-fr who_o have_v insert_v they_o whole_o in_o a_o book_n of_o mounseur_fw-fr de_fw-fr marca_n touch_v the_o liberty_n of_o the_o gallican_n church_n in_o the_o three_o of_o these_o canon_n this_o ordinance_n be_v make_v 344._o apud_fw-la marc._n de_fw-fr concord_n l._n 8._o c._n 18._o p._n 344._o we_o expel_v out_o of_o the_o church_n as_o heretic_n and_o condemn_v those_o who_o make_v a_o show_n of_o piety_n do_v not_o approve_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n etc._n etc._n we_o command_v all_o secular_a power_n to_o punish_v they_o and_o we_o bind_v with_o the_o same_o bond_n of_o excommunication_n those_o which_o shall_v protect_v they_o until_o such_o time_n as_o they_o shall_v repent_v this_o canon_n as_o far_o as_o i_o see_v concern_v only_o these_o albigensis_n who_o not_o approve_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n upon_o the_o point_n of_o the_o eucharist_n separate_v themselves_o from_o their_o communion_n after_o it_o have_v condemn_v the_o doctrine_n teach_v by_o berengarius_fw-la and_o establish_v that_o of_o paschas_fw-la in_o the_o xi_o century_n although_o it_o have_v not_o admit_v thereof_o before_o and_o what_o confirm_v i_o in_o this_o opinion_n be_v what_o i_o find_v in_o the_o chronicle_n of_o st._n tron_n in_o the_o country_n of_o liege_n touch_v radolph_n abbot_n of_o that_o monastery_n and_o beside_o author_n of_o the_o chronicle_n viz._n that_o be_v go_v to_o rome_n in_o pope_n honorius_n the_o second_o his_o time_n who_o be_v advance_v to_o this_o dignity_n in_o the_o year_n 1125._o and_o hold_v the_o chair_n five_o year_n he_o have_v a_o design_n to_o travel_v into_o another_o country_n which_o he_o do_v not_o name_n but_o that_o he_o be_v inform_v that_o it_o be_v infect_v with_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o sacramentarian_o that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o doctrine_n which_o be_v condemn_v in_o the_o person_n of_o berengarius_fw-la it_o add_v moreover_o 493._o tom._n 7._o spicil_n d'ach._n p._n 493._o he_o understand_v that_o the_o country_n towards_o which_o he_o have_v a_o design_n to_o travel_v in_o go_v far_o it_o be_v infect_v with_o the_o old_a heresy_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n this_o radolph_n be_v abbot_n of_o tron_n anno_fw-la 1108._o and_o he_o write_v his_o chronicle_n about_o the_o year_n 1125._o there_o be_v then_o at_o that_o time_n a_o country_n wherein_o profession_n be_v make_v of_o a_o belief_n contrary_a unto_o that_o of_o the_o latin_a church_n in_o the_o point_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o because_o this_o abbot_n have_v receive_v and_o approve_v the_o decision_n of_o leo_n victor_n nicholas_n and_o of_o gregory_n against_o berengarius_fw-la and_o against_o his_o doctrine_n he_o call_v the_o other_o opinion_n heresy_n and_o not_o only_a heresy_n but_o the_o old_a heresy_n this_o be_v the_o very_a term_n he_o use_v which_o show_v that_o the_o belief_n which_o he_o condemn_v be_v no_o new_a invention_n according_a to_o the_o judgement_n of_o this_o author_n but_o that_o it_o have_v of_o a_o long_a time_n be_v much_o speak_v of_o and_o that_o it_o be_v public_o profess_v by_o great_a number_n of_o people_n especial_o in_o the_o country_n mention_v by_o he_o which_o in_o all_o probability_n be_v the_o country_n of_o languedock_n wherein_o the_o follower_n of_o berengarius_fw-la spread_v and_o publish_v abroad_o his_o doctrine_n immediate_o after_o his_o death_n not_o value_v the_o prohibition_n and_o decree_n of_o the_o council_n of_o verceil_n of_o rome_n and_o of_o tours_n on_o the_o contrary_a see_v they_o authorize_v and_o pass_v into_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n a_o opinion_n which_o they_o esteem_v to_o be_v novel_a and_o contrary_a unto_o the_o ancient_a doctrine_n of_o christian_n they_o separate_v and_o break_v off_o from_o the_o latin_a church_n in_o who_o communion_n they_o have_v live_v till_o that_o time_n these_o people_n have_v for_o their_o chief_a conductor_n peter_n de_fw-fr bruis_n who_o after_o have_v defend_v and_o maintain_v this_o faith_n and_o doctrine_n have_v preach_v and_o publish_v it_o for_o the_o space_n of_o twenty_o year_n in_o languedock_n in_o gascoigne_n and_o elsewhere_o be_v at_o last_o martyr_a and_o burn_v at_o st._n giles_n in_o languedock_n by_o the_o care_n and_o diligence_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n prefer_v rather_o to_o suffer_v death_n and_o to_o seal_v with_o his_o blood_n the_o doctrine_n which_o he_o have_v teach_v and_o which_o infinite_a number_n of_o people_n open_o profess_v than_o to_o return_v unto_o the_o communion_n which_o he_o have_v forsake_v after_o peter_n de_fw-fr bruis_n succeed_v henry_n who_o with_o some_o other_o defend_v the_o faith_n of_o these_o church_n which_o after_o his_o name_n be_v call_v henritian_n as_o they_o have_v be_v also_o call_v petrobusian_o from_o the_o name_n of_o his_o predecessor_n it_o be_v true_a that_o those_o which_o have_v cause_v peter_n de_fw-fr bruis_n to_o be_v burn_v find_a mean_n also_o to_o suppress_v henry_n by_o order_n of_o pope_n eugenius_n for_o cardinal_n alberick_n 5._o vita_fw-la s._n bernardi_n l._n 3._o c._n 5._o bishop_n of_o osty_a his_o legate_n have_v get_v he_o into_o his_o power_n order_v matter_n so_o that_o he_o be_v never_o hear_v of_o after_o neither_o can_v it_o be_v hear_v of_o what_o manner_n of_o death_n he_o die_v but_o we_o know_v very_o well_o that_o pope_n eugenius_n be_v inform_v of_o the_o great_a progress_n make_v by_o henry_n after_o the_o death_n of_o peter_n de_fw-fr bruis_n who_o martyrdom_n do_v only_o increase_v and_o heighten_v his_o zeal_n for_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o faith_n we_o know_v i_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n send_v alberick_n his_o legate_n who_o with_o gaufrid_n bishop_n of_o chartres_n st._n bernard_n abbot_n of_o clervaux_n who_o be_v at_o that_o time_n in_o great_a esteem_n with_o some_o other_o 1147._o baron_fw-fr ad_fw-la an._n 1147._o who_o go_v towards_o tholouse_n to_o pluck_v up_o these_o thorn_n as_o cardinal_n baronius_n say_v st._n bernard_n write_v beforehand_o unto_o alphonsus_n count_n of_o st._n giles_n in_o languedock_n who_o favour_v henry_n with_o his_o protection_n notwithstanding_o the_o violent_a death_n which_o peter_n the_o bruis_n have_v suffer_v 240._o bernard_n ep._n 240._o in_o this_o letter_n st._n bernard_n say_v several_a thing_n against_o the_o doctrine_n and_o the_o conversation_n of_o henry_n who_o from_o a_o friar_n that_o he_o be_v have_v embrace_v the_o opinion_n and_o party_n of_o peter_n his_o colleague_n less_o modest_a therein_o than_o peter_n de_fw-fr clunie_n his_o contemporary_a and_o also_o a_o great_a enemy_n of_o the_o albigensis_n petrobrus_fw-la contr._n petrobrus_fw-la against_o who_o he_o write_v under_o the_o name_n of_o petrobusian_o for_o he_o declare_v that_o he_o will_v suspend_v his_o judgement_n of_o what_o be_v report_v of_o henry_n until_o he_o be_v more_o certain_o inform_v of_o it_o so_o that_o i_o can_v tell_v if_o it_o may_v not_o be_v apply_v unto_o st._n bernard_n 47._o in_o frideric_n l._n 1._o c._n 47._o in_o this_o occasion_n what_o be_v say_v by_o otto_n the_o frisinge_a that_o by_o a_o mildness_n which_o be_v natural_a unto_o he_o he_o become_v in_o a_o manner_n over_o credulous_a in_o fine_a st._n bernard_n be_v come_v to_o tholouse_n 6._o vita_fw-la bernard_n l._n 3._o c._n 5_o 6._o he_o bestir_v himself_o with_o much_o
their_o opinion_n make_v all_o the_o accusation_n contrary_a thereunto_o to_o be_v void_a because_o we_o can_v judge_v of_o the_o faith_n of_o a_o society_n and_o of_o a_o communion_n but_o by_o the_o confession_n which_o it_o make_v to_o the_o prejudice_n whereof_o nothing_o more_o can_v lawful_o be_v charge_v upon_o it_o it_o seem_v to_o i_o to_o be_v the_o true_a mean_n certain_o to_o judge_v of_o the_o belief_n of_o those_o of_o who_o we_o speak_v and_o of_o the_o accusation_n which_o have_v be_v lay_v to_o their_o charge_n peter_n of_o clunie_n write_v against_o the_o petrobrusian_o that_o be_v to_o say_v against_o the_o disciple_n of_o peter_n de_fw-fr bruis_n or_o against_o the_o albigensis_n say_v that_o the_o report_n be_v petrobrus_fw-la peter_n clunie_n contra_fw-la petrobrus_fw-la that_o they_o believe_v neither_o in_o jesus_n christ_n nor_o in_o the_o prophet_n nor_o apostle_n and_o that_o they_o deny_v the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n that_o they_o reject_v the_o whole_a canon_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o nevertheless_o i_o will_v not_o believe_v say_v he_o nor_o accuse_v they_o of_o thing_n so_o uncertain_a which_o proceed_v so_o far_o appear_v very_o just_a and_o reasonable_a for_o a_o christian_n charity_n shall_v not_o be_v suspicious_a and_o in_o fine_a see_v here_o what_o they_o declare_v in_o the_o year_n 1120._o 3._o hist_o of_o albing_n by_o paul_n perrin_n c._n 1._o l._n 3._o forty_o year_n before_o waldo_n appear_v it_o be_v evident_a say_v they_o both_o by_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n that_o a_o christian_n be_v oblige_v by_o the_o commandment_n enjoin_v he_o that_o he_o shall_v depart_v from_o antichrist_n which_o they_o prove_v by_o sundry_a passage_n of_o esay_n jeremiah_n ezekiel_n of_o leviticus_n number_n exodus_fw-la deuteronomy_n of_o st._n matthew_n st._n john_n and_o the_o revelation_n the_o report_n be_v also_o as_o the_o same_o peter_n de_fw-fr clunie_n say_v that_o they_o deny_v that_o little_a child_n under_o a_o reasonable_a age_n can_v be_v save_v by_o the_o baptism_n of_o jesus_n christ_n nevertheless_o i_o only_o can_v find_v this_o in_o their_o confession_n 4._o ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la c._n 4._o what_o be_v not_o necessary_a in_o the_o administration_n of_o baptism_n be_v the_o exorcism_n blow_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n upon_o the_o breast_n and_o face_n of_o the_o infant_n the_o salt_n which_o be_v put_v into_o the_o mouth_n and_o the_o spital_n put_v into_o their_o ear_n and_o nose_n etc._n etc._n and_o about_o eighty_o or_o ninety_o year_n after_o waldo_n begin_v to_o appear_v reynerus_n one_o of_o their_o great_a enemy_n 3_o cap_n 5._o &_o 3_o give_v they_o this_o testimony_n they_o common_o have_v by_o heart_n the_o text_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o good_a part_n of_o the_o old_a they_o have_v the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n translate_v into_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n and_o so_o they_o do_v teach_v and_o learn_v it_o i_o see_v and_o hear_v one_o of_o their_o peasant_n who_o repeat_v word_n by_o word_n the_o book_n of_o job_n and_o several_a other_o of_o they_o who_o repeat_v perfect_o all_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o elsewhere_o 4._o cap._n 4._o all_o other_o kind_n of_o sect_n say_v he_o be_v monstrous_a by_o reason_n of_o the_o blasphemy_n which_o they_o audacious_o offer_v against_o god_n but_o as_o for_o the_o sect_n of_o the_o leonist_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o waldensis_n they_o have_v a_o great_a appearance_n of_o piety_n because_o they_o live_v upright_o and_o just_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o man_n and_o have_v a_o sound_a belief_n for_o all_o that_o concern_v god_n and_o of_o all_o the_o article_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o creed_n if_o those_o people_n have_v good_a and_o sound_a thought_n touch_v god_n and_o a_o right_a belief_n of_o all_o the_o article_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n as_o their_o very_a adversary_n do_v confess_v as_o well_o as_o their_o own_o confession_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v impossible_a they_o shall_v either_o be_v arian_n or_o manichean_o it_o must_v then_o be_v say_v that_o those_o which_o charge_v they_o with_o both_o these_o heresy_n be_v very_o ill_o inform_v of_o their_o belief_n and_o to_o say_v the_o truth_n reynerus_n their_o persecutor_n have_v speak_v so_o much_o in_o their_o commendation_n that_o he_o sufficient_o warrant_v they_o from_o the_o impiety_n of_o manes_n and_o the_o heresy_n of_o arius_n also_o in_o the_o same_o treatise_n he_o careful_o distinguish_v they_o from_o the_o catharian_o and_o manichean_o 6._o cap._n 6._o for_o he_o say_v that_o there_o be_v not_o in_o the_o whole_a world_n above_o four_o thousand_o catharian_n man_n and_o woman_n but_o as_o for_o the_o believer_n they_o be_v without_o number_n for_o so_o it_o be_v he_o call_v the_o walaensis_n 12._o cap._n 1._o &_o 12._o as_o also_o do_v pilichdorphius_n who_o write_v against_o they_o and_o observe_v that_o the_o waldensis_n reject_v several_a sect_n of_o heretic_n which_o be_v then_o in_o the_o world_n chron_n hist_o albin_n c._n 2._o in_o prol._n chron_n and_o peter_n the_o vaux-sernay_a and_o william_n the_o puy-lawrans_a author_n of_o that_o age_n make_v a_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o albigensis_n and_o the_o waldensis_n and_o the_o manichean_o and_o arian_n thence_o it_o be_v that_o neither_o pilichdorfius_n nor_o bernard_n abbot_n de_fw-fr foncaude_a nor_o emery_n do_v not_o accuse_v they_o of_o manicheism_n nor_o of_o arianism_n in_o the_o list_n of_o the_o error_n which_o they_o impute_v unto_o they_o which_o consist_v chief_o in_o deny_v most_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n which_o the_o protestant_n do_v also_o reject_v certain_o william_n the_o newbridge_n although_o their_o great_a enemy_n clear_v they_o from_o all_o suspicion_n of_o these_o two_o impiety_n 13._o rerum_fw-la angl._n l._n 2._o c._n 13._o when_o speak_v of_o the_o albigensis_n under_o the_o name_n of_o publican_n which_o pass_v from_o gascoigne_n into_o england_n he_o say_v be_v examine_v by_o order_n upon_o the_o article_n of_o their_o faith_n they_o answer_v very_o well_o as_o to_o what_o regard_v the_o essence_n of_o the_o chief_a physician_n but_o ill_o as_o to_o the_o remedy_n whereby_o he_o be_v please_v to_o heal_v humane_a infirmity_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o divine_a sacrament_n all_o these_o consideration_n make_v i_o not_o approve_v the_o proceed_n of_o mariana_n and_o of_o gretzer_n who_o to_o make_v believe_v that_o these_o christian_n be_v real_o guilty_a of_o the_o abomination_n of_o manes_n and_o the_o blasphemy_n of_o arius_n have_v change_v the_o title_n of_o certain_a author_n which_o they_o have_v publish_v and_o which_o have_v write_v not_o only_o against_o the_o albigensis_n and_o waldensis_n but_o also_o against_o other_o for_o instance_n luke_n 〈◊〉_d tude_n have_v give_v this_o title_n unto_o his_o book_n of_o the_o life_n to_o come_v and_o of_o controversy_n of_o faith_n but_o mariana_n to_o make_v the_o reader_n believe_v this_o work_n only_o regard_v the_o albigensis_n have_v give_v it_o this_o title_n episcop_n in_o ep._n ad_fw-la carvajalium_fw-la cauricus_n episcop_n against_o the_o error_n of_o the_o albigensis_n and_o in_o his_o letter_n unto_o carvajalius_n i_o purpose_v say_v he_o to_o publish_v luke_n de_fw-fr tude_n his_o dispute_n against_o the_o heretic_n of_o his_o time_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o albigensis_n for_o this_o sect_n be_v strong_a in_o the_o day_n of_o luke_n reynerius_n have_v thus_o entitle_v his_o book_n a_o treatise_n touch_v heretic_n and_o gretzer_n have_v give_v it_o this_o inscription_n against_o the_o waldensis_n although_o the_o author_n do_v testify_v that_o he_o write_v also_o against_o other_o which_o be_v of_o opinion_n different_a from_o those_o of_o the_o waldensis_n and_o whereas_o everard_n de_fw-fr bethuna_n be_v content_a with_o this_o title_n antihaeresis_fw-la that_o be_v to_o say_v against_o heresy_n in_o which_o treatise_n he_o refute_v chief_o the_o mannicheans_n without_o name_v they_o the_o same_o gretzer_n have_v make_v no_o scruple_n to_o entitle_v it_o against_o the_o waldensis_n bernard_n the_o foncaude_a give_v this_o name_n unto_o his_o treatise_n against_o the_o waldensis_n and_o against_o the_o arian_n so_o evident_o distinguish_v in_o that_o manner_n the_o waldensis_n from_o the_o arian_n but_o gretzer_n content_v himself_o with_o this_o only_a against_o the_o waldensis_n in_o fine_a ermingard_n have_v place_v this_o title_n to_o his_o book_n against_o the_o heretic_n which_o believe_v and_o say_v that_o this_o world_n and_o all_o visible_a thing_n be_v not_o the_o work_n of_o god_n but_o of_o the_o devil_n that_o be_v to_o say_v against_o the_o manichean_o and_o gretzer_n have_v place_v over_o each_o page_n against_o the_o waldensis_n but_o this_o kind_n of_o conduct_n be_v so_o far_o from_o render_v those_o people_n more_o odious_a according_a to_o the_o intention_n of_o those_o which_o do_v it_o
reputation_n who_o see_v it_o before_o it_o be_v publish_v by_o aubertin_n that_o it_o be_v for_o certain_a in_o the_o register_n i_o will_v make_v no_o scruple_n of_o represent_v it_o here_o in_o our_o language_n that_o the_o reader_n may_v judge_v of_o what_o consequence_n it_o be_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o matter_n which_o we_o examine_v see_v here_o then_o what_o pope_n clement_n write_v unto_o this_o archbishop_n ●●_o in_o registr_n manuscript_n ep●●●_n clement_n ●●_o the_o more_o sincere_a our_o love_n be_v unto_o you_o the_o more_o we_o have_v be_v touch_v in_o hear_v certain_a thing_n of_o you_o which_o agree_v not_o with_o the_o gravity_n of_o your_o office_n consider_v especial_o that_o they_o endanger_v your_o dignity_n and_o your_o honour_n i_o write_v unto_o you_o familiar_o and_o unknown_a unto_o any_o body_n except_v he_o that_o write_v the_o letter_n to_o let_v you_o know_v that_o i_o be_o inform_v whilst_o you_o be_v in_o our_o court_n and_o discourse_v with_o a_o certain_a doctor_n touch_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n you_o say_v unto_o he_o that_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n be_v not_o essential_o in_o the_o eucharist_n no_o otherwise_o than_o the_o thing_n signify_v be_v in_o the_o sign_n and_o that_o you_o say_v moreover_o that_o this_o opinion_n be_v in_o great_a esteem_n at_o paris_n this_o discourse_n be_v secret_o whisper_v among_o some_o person_n and_o be_v at_o last_o come_v to_o our_o knowledge_n i_o be_v much_o trouble_v at_o it_o and_o i_o can_v scarce_o believe_v that_o you_o will_v have_v speak_v thing_n which_o contain_v manifest_a heresy_n and_o which_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o sacrament_n wherein_o faith_n do_v operate_v with_o so_o much_o the_o more_o benefit_n as_o it_o surpass_v sense_n captivate_v the_o understanding_n and_o subject_n reason_v under_o its_o law_n therefore_o i_o counsel_v you_o not_o to_o be_v wise_a than_o you_o shall_v and_o not_o to_o impute_v to_o the_o doctor_n of_o paris_n opinion_n which_o they_o believe_v not_o but_o that_o you_o humble_o confess_v and_o firm_o believe_v what_o the_o church_n believe_v and_o what_o the_o saint_n preach_v and_o teach_v viz._n that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n although_o he_o be_v local_o in_o heaven_n be_v true_o real_o and_o essential_o under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n after_o the_o priest_n have_v pronounce_v the_o sacred_a word_n according_a to_o the_o usage_n of_o the_o church_n and_o if_o by_o hazard_v you_o remember_v he_o or_o they_o unto_o who_o you_o have_v say_v it_o revoke_v it_o either_o verbal_o or_o by_o writing_n to_o the_o end_n that_o those_o which_o suppose_v that_o you_o believe_v what_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v of_o this_o great_a mystery_n may_v harbour_v no_o ill_a opinion_n of_o you_o at_o viterba_fw-la the_o 5_o of_o the_o calends_o of_o november_n anno_fw-la the_o 3d._n that_o be_v of_o his_o popedom_n which_o answer_v unto_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1268._o this_o prelate_n be_v dishearten_v at_o the_o read_n of_o this_o letter_n and_o fear_v the_o loss_n of_o his_o office_n and_o honour_n deny_v have_v speak_v what_o the_o pope_n tax_v he_o with_o and_o under_o obscure_a and_o intricate_a term_n make_v profession_n of_o believe_v what_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n believe_v concern_v this_o mystery_n yet_o in_o such_o a_o manner_n that_o he_o say_v certain_a thing_n which_o agree_v not_o very_o well_o with_o this_o doctrine_n 519._o in_o registro_fw-la epist_n clemen_n supra_fw-la cit_fw-la ep._n 519._o and_o which_o seem_v to_o testify_v that_o this_o archbishop_n of_o narbona_n dare_v not_o free_o to_o declare_v his_o thought_n the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n say_v he_o be_v understand_v four_o several_a way_n 1._o it_o be_v so_o call_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o resemblance_n as_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n and_o that_o improper_o 2._o it_o be_v take_v for_o the_o material_a flesh_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v crucify_v and_o pierce_v with_o a_o lance_n and_o which_o be_v first_o take_v from_o the_o bless_a virgin_n and_o this_o signification_n be_v proper_a 3._o for_o the_o church_n or_o for_o its_o mystical_a unity_n 4._o for_o the_o spiritual_a flesh_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v meat_n indeed_o and_o it_o be_v say_v of_o those_o which_o eat_v this_o flesh_n spiritual_o that_o they_o do_v receive_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o flesh_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n this_o prelate_n make_v a_o difference_n of_o the_o spiritual_a flesh_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o he_o propose_v as_o the_o food_n of_o believer_n from_o the_o flesh_n of_o our_o lord_n take_v proper_o and_o in_o its_o true_a signification_n i_o can_v tell_v if_o his_o opinion_n and_o judgement_n may_v not_o thereby_o be_v determine_v which_o i_o leave_v unto_o other_o to_o do_v whereas_o it_o be_v read_v in_o the_o pope_n letter_n unto_o this_o archbishop_n that_o he_o say_v that_o his_o opinion_n contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n be_v famous_a and_o frequent_a at_o paris_n it_o be_v not_o without_o great_a probability_n if_o it_o be_v consider_v that_o two_o year_n after_o that_o be_v to_o say_v anno_fw-la 1270._o which_o be_v the_o year_n of_o the_o death_n of_o st._n lewis_n stephen_n bishop_n of_o paris_n condemn_v by_o advice_n of_o the_o doctor_n of_o divinity_n those_o which_o hold_v 1._o that_o god_n do_v not_o make_v the_o accident_n to_o subsist_v without_o its_o subject_a 924._o tom_n 4._o bibl._n pat._n p._n 924._o because_o it_o be_v of_o his_o essence_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v actual_o in_o its_o subject_n 2._o that_o the_o accident_n without_o a_o subject_a be_v not_o a_o accident_n unless_o it_o be_v equivocal_a 3._o that_o to_o make_v the_o accident_n be_v without_o the_o subject_a as_o we_o believe_v it_o be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n be_v a_o thing_n impossible_a and_o imply_v a_o contradiction_n 4._o that_o god_n can_v make_v the_o accident_n to_o be_v without_o the_o subject_a nor_o that_o there_o shall_v be_v several_a dimension_n together_o maxim_n which_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o transubstantiation_n declare_v if_o i_o mistake_v not_o that_o those_o which_o hold_v they_o be_v far_o from_o believe_v it_o which_o i_o refer_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o reader_n content_v myself_o in_o warn_v he_o 1236._o tom._n 2._o spicil_n p._n 795._o anno_fw-la 1236._o that_o instead_o of_o the_o year_n 1227._o which_o be_v mark_v at_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o anathema_n it_o shall_v be_v the_o year_n 1270._o that_o about_o thirty_o year_n before_o to_o wit_n the_o year_n 1236._o there_o be_v take_v in_o divers_a part_n of_o france_n flanders_n champagne_n burgundy_n and_o other_o province_n great_a number_n of_o waldensis_n under_o the_o name_n of_o bulgarian_n and_o pifle_n and_o that_o all_o those_o which_o will_v not_o renounce_v their_o faith_n be_v burn_v alive_a and_o their_o good_n confiscate_v as_o the_o chronicle_n of_o st._n medard_n of_o soissons_fw-fr do_v testify_v where_o it_o be_v observe_v that_o before_o that_o time_n it_o be_v so_o practise_v for_o three_o whole_a year_n together_o and_o that_o the_o same_o course_n be_v hold_v the_o five_o year_n follow_v without_o intermission_n to_o wit_n until_o the_o year_n 1241._o what_o i_o have_v now_o say_v of_o the_o letter_n of_o clement_n the_o four_o unto_o the_o archbishop_n of_o narban_n and_o that_o of_o this_o prelate_n unto_o the_o pope_n and_o of_o the_o condemnation_n of_o certain_a maxim_n which_o be_v condemn_v by_o stephen_n bishop_n of_o paris_n will_v receive_v much_o light_n from_o the_o history_n of_o what_o pass_v in_o the_o university_n of_o paris_n in_o the_o year_n of_o our_o lord_n 1304._o and_o see_v here_o what_o it_o be_v john_n of_o paris_n of_o the_o order_n of_o preach_a friar_n that_o be_v of_o dominican_n teach_v a_o manner_n of_o exist_v of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n different_a from_o that_o which_o be_v common_o receive_v in_o the_o latin_a church_n he_o do_v not_o indeed_o condemn_v the_o manner_n of_o exist_v of_o the_o conversion_n of_o bread_n into_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v the_o opinion_n general_o receive_v among_o the_o latin_n but_o he_o pretend_v that_o it_o be_v no_o article_n of_o faith_n not_o have_v be_v determine_v by_o the_o church_n no_o more_o than_o that_o which_o he_o mean_v to_o establish_v and_o that_o therefore_o it_o be_v at_o every_o body_n free_a choice_n to_o embrace_v either_o the_o one_o or_o the_o other_o although_o he_o judge_v his_o safe_a and_o subject_n unto_o less_o inconvenience_n and_o he_o make_v it_o consist_v in_o the_o assumption_n of_o the_o bread_n by_o the_o divinity_n and_o in_o that_o the_o substance_n of_o
age_n and_o do_v moreover_o observe_v that_o most_o of_o the_o english_a prelate_n connive_v at_o what_o they_o teach_v so_o that_o be_v beside_o favour_v by_o several_a person_n of_o quality_n they_o make_v open_a profession_n of_o their_o faith_n so_o far_o as_o they_o affix_v public_o upon_o the_o door_n of_o st._n paul_n church_n in_o london_n certain_a thesis_n which_o be_v no_o way_n favourable_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n nor_o to_o its_o clergy_n at_o the_o same_o time_n there_o be_v several_a waldensis_n at_o the_o strait_n of_o the_o alps_o which_o divide_v france_n and_o italy_n as_o we_o be_v inform_v by_o 2._o 1_o contr._n vald._n fol._n 2._o claud_n de_fw-fr cecil_n archbishop_n of_o turin_n and_o of_o a_o bull_n of_o clement_n the_o seven_o grant_v at_o avignion_n against_o they_o in_o the_o year_n grenoble_n 2_o his_o bull_n be_v in_o the_o chamber_n of_o account_n at_o grenoble_n 1380._o and_o put_v in_o execution_n by_o one_o francis_n borelli_n inquisitor_n of_o the_o order_n of_o preach_v friar_n who_o persecute_v they_o cruel_o for_o several_a year_n and_o put_v many_o of_o they_o to_o death_n i_o know_v not_o whether_o the_o university_n of_o paris_n intend_v not_o to_o speak_v of_o the_o same_o waldensis_n in_o the_o letter_n which_o it_o direct_v unto_o charles_n the_o six_o in_o the_o year_n 1394._o 97._o 3_o tom._n 6._o spicil_n p._n 97._o complain_v among_o other_o thing_n that_o the_o heretic_n which_o have_v already_o begin_v to_o appear_v find_v none_o to_o punish_v they_o do_v make_v great_a progress_n and_o not_o only_o scatter_v abroad_o there_o pernicious_a heresy_n public_o but_o also_o in_o private_a the_o xv._o century_n prove_v more_o fatal_a unto_o the_o waldensis_fw-la and_o lollard_n in_o england_n for_o from_o the_o first_o year_n the_o persecution_n be_v begin_v against_o they_o in_o pursuance_n of_o a_o act_n of_o parliament_n which_o give_v power_n to_o put_v they_o to_o death_n if_o they_o recant_v not_o their_o religion_n as_o iu._n 4_o in_o hypodig_n neustr_n ad_fw-la a_o 1401._o &_o in_o henrico_n iu._n walsingham_n do_v testify_v but_o notwithstanding_o all_o this_o they_o lose_v not_o their_o courage_n nor_o abandon_v the_o doctrine_n they_o have_v until_o than_o profess_a on_o the_o contrary_a the_o iu._n 5_o in_o henr._n iu._n same_o historian_n observe_v that_o the_o year_n follow_v they_o propose_v several_a thesis_n but_o private_o for_o fear_v of_o the_o punishment_n which_o have_v be_v appoint_v thesis_n which_o be_v nothing_o favourable_a unto_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n which_o renew_v the_o persecution_n against_o they_o during_o which_o several_a of_o they_o be_v burn_v alive_a which_o this_o friar_n say_v be_v do_v in_o the_o year_n 1410_o 1414_o 1417._o even_a insult_a after_o a_o most_o unchristian_a manner_n at_o the_o death_n of_o these_o people_n as_o do_v also_o thomas_n waldensis_n who_o speak_v unto_o king_n henry_n the_o five_o do_v mighty_o commend_v the_o continual_a punishment_n which_o be_v inflict_v upon_o they_o prologi_fw-la in_o prologue_n t._n 2._o doct_n 11._o &_o ad_fw-la initium_fw-la prologi_fw-la say_v that_o prince_n proceed_v according_a to_o the_o command_n of_o jesus_n christ_n who_o nevertheless_o require_v not_o conscience_n to_o be_v force_v but_o persuade_v and_o who_o gospel_n be_v make_v up_o of_o love_n and_o of_o mildness_n but_o whilst_o these_o thing_n be_v act_v in_o england_n there_o be_v in_o bohemia_n infinite_a number_n of_o people_n that_o make_v open_a profession_n of_o the_o same_o doctrine_n for_o which_o the_o lollard_n be_v persecute_v in_o great_a britain_n for_o beside_o the_o waldensis_n which_o have_v retire_v themselves_o thither_o a_o great_a while_n before_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o persecution_n stir_v up_o against_o they_o in_o picardy_n as_o dubravius_n bishop_n of_o olmuz_o inform_v we_o in_o the_o precedent_a chapter_n at_o the_o beginning_n of_o this_o century_n there_o be_v make_v in_o that_o country_n a_o considerable_a separation_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n according_a to_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o same_o dubravius_n and_o of_o aeneas_n silvius_n in_o their_o history_n of_o bohemia_n it_o be_v true_a this_o separation_n be_v not_o alike_o in_o all_o for_o some_o only_o desire_v the_o restitution_n of_o the_o cup_n unto_o the_o people_n be_v of_o accord_n in_o all_o other_o point_n with_o the_o latin_n and_o those_o for_o this_o reason_n be_v call_v calixtin_n but_o as_o for_o the_o other_o they_o disown_v the_o same_o doctrine_n of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o latin_n which_o the_o waldensis_n and_o wickliffite_n have_v oppose_v and_o do_v still_o oppose_v and_o because_o as_o some_o allege_v these_o latter_a join_v themselves_o unto_o the_o waldensis_fw-la which_o have_v be_v settle_v a_o long_a time_n in_o this_o kingdom_n and_o use_v to_o assemble_v themselves_o in_o the_o mountain_n of_o tabor_n they_o be_v call_v taborite_n as_o dubravius_n have_v observe_v but_o let_v we_o hear_v what_o this_o prelate_n intend_v to_o say_v touch_v this_o separation_n when_o have_v speak_v of_o the_o jubilee_n celebrate_v at_o prague_n in_o the_o year_n 1400._o he_o add_v unto_o this_o time_n the_o christian_a religion_n bohem._n lib._n 23._o hist_o bohem._n which_o have_v be_v once_o receive_v by_o the_o bohemian_o with_o all_o the_o ceremony_n of_o the_o apostolic_a see_v have_v continue_v steadfast_a in_o bohemia_n in_o its_o purity_n but_o after_o that_o time_n it_o begin_v to_o falter_v and_o decline_v as_o soon_o as_o john_n hus_n which_o in_o the_o language_n of_o the_o country_n signify_v a_o goose_n begin_v to_o make_v a_o noise_n among_o the_o swan_n and_o by_o his_o sound_n to_o conquer_v the_o sweetness_n of_o their_o sing_n by_o the_o assistance_n of_o a_o faction_n which_o make_v itself_o considerable_a in_o fine_a the_o progress_n be_v so_o great_a that_o he_o write_v that_o the_o taborite_n so_o order_v matter_n 24._o ibid._n l._n 24._o that_o in_o the_o city_n of_o prague_n there_o rest_v no_o sign_n of_o the_o ancient_a catholic_n religion_n also_o the_o friar_n walsingham_n testify_v that_o the_o emperor_n sigismond_n return_v from_o constance_n into_o his_o own_o territory_n after_o the_o council_n have_v elect_v pope_n martin_n the_o five_o iu._n in_o henr._n iu._n to_o employ_v all_o his_o strength_n to_o ruin_v the_o enemy_n of_o religion_n and_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o lollard_n which_o be_v mighty_o increase_v in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o bohemia_n by_o the_o lukewarmness_n and_o support_v of_o his_o elder_a brother_n dubravius_n proceed_v far_a for_o after_o the_o coronation_n of_o sigismond_n at_o prague_n 26_o ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la l._n 26_o he_o propose_v the_o tenet_n of_o the_o taborite_n but_o after_o a_o manner_n that_o be_v not_o exact_o conformable_a unto_o their_o confession_n of_o faith_n by_o which_o nevertheless_o their_o belief_n ought_v to_o be_v judge_v because_o it_o be_v in_o those_o public_a act_n that_o for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v declare_v what_o be_v believe_v in_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o treat_v of_o moravia_n upon_o the_o year_n 1421._o he_o observe_v that_o country_n be_v not_o then_o infect_v with_o the_o heresy_n of_o the_o taborite_n but_o in_o that_o same_o year_n they_o begin_v there_o to_o establish_v themselves_o renew_v say_v he_o the_o ancient_a error_n of_o the_o picard_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o the_o waldensis_n to_o wit_n that_o none_o ought_v to_o kneel_v unto_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n because_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v not_o there_o have_v ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n both_o in_o body_n and_o soul_n and_o that_o there_o remain_v only_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n i_o know_v very_o well_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o olmuz_n charge_v they_o in_o the_o same_o place_n of_o teach_v that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n of_o the_o eucharist_n be_v such_o bread_n and_o wine_n as_o each_o particular_a among_o the_o people_n may_v take_v with_o their_o own_o hand_n that_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o priest_n be_v no_o more_o worthy_a than_o that_o of_o a_o private_a lay_v person_n and_o to_o vomit_v say_v he_o other_o blasphemy_n against_o the_o real_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o because_o the_o quite_o contrary_a do_v appear_v by_o their_o confession_n of_o faith_n i_o know_v not_o whether_o it_o will_v be_v reasonable_a to_o admit_v of_o this_o accusation_n come_v from_o the_o pen_n and_o hand_n of_o a_o enemy_n aeneas_n silvius_n 35._o cap._n 35._o who_o be_v afterward_o pope_n pius_n the_o second_o speak_v of_o those_o people_n at_o large_a in_o his_o history_n of_o bohemia_n he_o relate_v several_a thing_n of_o they_o agree_v with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o protestant_n but_o he_o also_o mention_n other_o thing_n which_o the_o protestant_n do_v not_o approve_v the_o which_o in_o all_o probability_n be_v unjust_o
impute_v unto_o they_o because_o there_o be_v not_o the_o least_o sign_n of_o it_o to_o be_v find_v supra_fw-la cap._n 10_o 11_o 12_o 13._o ●bi_fw-la supra_fw-la neither_o in_o the_o confession_n of_o faith_n make_v by_o the_o waldensis_n insert_v by_o paul_n perrin_n in_o their_o history_n nor_o in_o that_o of_o the_o taborite_n which_o by_o the_o testimony_n of_o aeneas_n silvius_n have_v embrace_v the_o impious_a and_o wicked_a sect_n of_o the_o waldensis_n of_o necessity_n then_o their_o belief_n must_v be_v the_o same_o with_o the_o protestant_n because_o that_o of_o the_o waldensis_n do_v agree_v with_o it_o as_o may_v be_v judge_v by_o all_o that_o have_v be_v hitherto_o speak_v but_o in_o fine_a the_o question_n be_v to_o know_v the_o belief_n of_o the_o taborite_n touch_v the_o holy_a sacrament_n but_o what_o can_v better_a inform_v we_o than_o their_o own_o confession_n of_o faith_n draw_v up_o in_o the_o year_n 1431._o by_o john_n lukavitz_n wherein_o they_o declare_v lukavit_n confess_v tabor_n joan._n lukavit_n that_o their_o belief_n touch_v the_o eucharist_n be_v that_o the_o bread_n remain_v in_o its_o nature_n true_a bread_n and_o that_o it_o be_v the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n not_o by_o a_o material_a identity_n but_o sacramental_o real_o and_o true_o then_o they_o reject_v the_o opinion_n of_o those_o which_o say_v that_o the_o same_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v in_o heaven_n be_v also_o in_o the_o sacrament_n ibid._n ibid._n with_o all_o its_o essential_a and_o accidental_a propriety_n because_o say_v they_o this_o will_v be_v a_o mean_n to_o presuppose_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n shall_v cease_v to_o be_v and_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v convert_v substantial_o into_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n moreover_o they_o formal_o deny_v the_o adoration_n of_o the_o eucharist_n if_o john_n hus_n be_v of_o the_o same_o opinion_n of_o those_o which_o be_v call_v taborite_n it_o must_v be_v own_v after_o so_o express_v a_o declaration_n as_o they_o make_v that_o he_o oppose_v the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantion_n if_o we_o give_v credit_n unto_o what_o be_v report_v in_o the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n we_o can_v question_v but_o that_o he_o be_v contrary_a unto_o this_o doctrine_n in_o fine_a the_o council_n do_v condemn_v thirty_o article_n of_o john_n hus_n in_o the_o 15._o 1_o council_n constant_n sess_v 15._o twenty_o five_o whereof_o they_o make_v he_o say_v that_o he_o do_v approve_v of_o forty_o article_n of_o wickliff_n the_o 8._o 2_o ibid._n sess_v 8._o three_o first_o whereof_o be_v direct_o contrary_a unto_o transubstantiation_n moreover_o there_o be_v to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o proceed_n make_v against_o he_o that_o he_o have_v preach_v and_o teach_v 15._o 3_o ibid._n sess_v 15._o that_o after_o consecrate_v the_o host_n at_o the_o altar_n the_o material_a bread_n do_v remain_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n remain_v after_o consecration_n and_o that_o the_o opinion_n which_o the_o church_n hold_v of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v erroneous_a therefore_o pope_n martin_n the_o five_o constant_n ad_fw-la finem_fw-la council_n constant_n in_o his_o bull_n of_o approbation_n of_o the_o council_n do_v not_o fail_v of_o represent_v john_n hus_n as_o approve_v the_o article_n of_o wickliff_n before_o speak_v of_o ibid._n ibid._n he_o declare_v also_o that_o jerom_n of_o prague_n be_v of_o the_o same_o judgement_n that_o be_v to_o say_v in_o a_o opinion_n contrary_a unto_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o the_o council_n do_v also_o observe_v in_o the_o twenty_o first_o 21._o 1_o ibid._n sess_v 21._o session_n and_o gobellin_n persona_fw-la official_a of_o the_o diocese_n of_o 95._o 2_o cosmodrom_n a_o tat_o 6._o c._n 95._o peterborough_n who_o live_v at_o that_o time_n think_v that_o he_o ought_v not_o to_o say_v the_o contrary_a after_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o of_o the_o council_n but_o if_o we_o consult_v the_o work_n of_o john_n hus_n print_v at_o noremberg_n anno_fw-la 1558._o with_o his_o martyrdom_n and_o that_o of_o jerom_n of_o prague_n for_o so_o it_o be_v that_o their_o death_n be_v therein_o style_v we_o shall_v find_v that_o he_o always_o believe_v the_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o that_o of_o concomitance_n and_o the_o read_n of_o wickliff_n work_n for_o who_o he_o have_v a_o extraordinary_a kindness_n call_v he_o always_o evangelical_n doctor_n can_v never_o make_v he_o alter_v his_o mind_n nor_o work_v upon_o his_o spirit_n the_o same_o effect_n which_o it_o wrought_v upon_o the_o taborite_n in_o fine_a in_o his_o treatise_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n against_o the_o false_a apparition_n of_o it_o which_o at_o that_o time_n be_v frequent_o publish_v in_o all_o part_n he_o say_v 155_o tom._n 1._o fol._n 155_o that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v in_o the_o sacrament_n true_o and_o real_o after_o what_o manner_n soever_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v here_o below_o in_o the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v as_o appear_v by_o the_o scope_n of_o the_o whole_a discourse_n invisible_o and_o not_o visible_o as_o the_o autor_n of_o these_o miraculous_a apparition_n will_v have_v it_o be_v believe_v and_o in_o the_o same_o treatise_n ibid._n ibid._n he_o accuse_v of_o incredulity_n those_o which_o believe_v not_o what_o he_o say_v of_o the_o presence_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n he_o suppose_v ibid._n ibid._n that_o accident_n do_v subsist_v without_o their_o subject_n in_o the_o sacrament_n confess_v that_o there_o be_v no_o contradiction_n in_o say_v that_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v here_o sacramental_o 161._o ibid._n p._n 156._o ibid._n p._n 158._o ibid._n fol._n 161._o and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n in_o heaven_n local_o he_o affirm_v for_o truth_n that_o his_o blood_n be_v true_o and_o real_o in_o the_o sacramen_fw-la confess_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v hide_v in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o among_o many_o inconvenience_n which_o he_o fear_v these_o feign_a apparition_n of_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n may_v produce_v 162._o ibid._n fol._n 162._o he_o put_v this_o down_o as_o the_o five_o that_o it_o may_v be_v there_o be_v some_o which_o question_n whether_o the_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v in_o the_o venerable_a sacrament_n because_o it_o do_v not_o visible_o appear_v unto_o they_o and_o a_o little_a after_o he_o say_v that_o we_o adore_v the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o of_o jesus_n christ_n which_o be_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n and_o in_o the_o venerable_a sacrament_n make_v by_o the_o priest_n the_o same_o man_n write_v in_o his_o treatise_n of_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n 164._o id._n t._n 1._o fol._n 164._o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o berengarius_fw-la be_v a_o great_a heresy_n he_o receive_v for_o a_o true_a testimony_n of_o st._n augustine_n a_o passage_n of_o lanfranc_n a_o swear_a enemy_n of_o berengarius_fw-la which_o the_o canonist_n gratian_n cite_v in_o his_o decree_n under_o the_o name_n of_o st._n austin_n in_o a_o word_n in_o this_o little_a treatise_n he_o embrace_v and_o follow_v all_o that_o the_o latin_n believe_v of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n and_o that_o it_o shall_v not_o be_v imagine_v that_o he_o change_v his_o opinion_n it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v that_o among_o several_a little_a treatise_n which_o he_o compose_v during_o his_o imprisonment_n at_o constance_n 1_o cap._n 2._o p._n 32._o t._n 1_o there_o be_v one_o of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n write_v anno_fw-la 1415._o wherein_o he_o teach_v the_o same_o doctrine_n ibid._n ibid._n declare_v moreover_o that_o all_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n believe_v of_o the_o venerable_a sacrament_n aught_o to_o be_v believe_v that_o he_o have_v preach_v this_o doctrine_n from_o the_o beginning_n unto_o that_o day_n and_o in_o fine_a 3_o ibid._n fol._n 49._o ibid._n fol._n 40._o c._n 3_o that_o he_o believe_v transubstantiation_n and_o say_v he_o i_o never_o teach_v that_o the_o substance_n of_o material_a bread_n remain_v in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n he_o add_v a_o little_a after_o that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o saviour_n remain_v in_o the_o sacrament_n as_o long_o as_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n do_v subsist_v in_o another_o little_a treatise_n wherein_o he_o examine_v whether_o lay-person_n shall_v receive_v under_o both_o kind_n he_o lay_v it_o down_o for_o a_o truth_n that_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v under_o both_o species_n of_o the_o sacrament_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o he_o be_v entire_o under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n and_o entire_o under_o that_o of_o wine_n he_o that_o write_v the_o history_n of_o john_n hus_n particular_o the_o conflict_n he_o be_v to_o suffer_v at_o
they_o be_v cautious_a in_o declare_v themselves_o for_o fear_v of_o be_v trouble_v it_o be_v otherwise_o in_o bohemia_n the_o profession_n of_o this_o doctrine_n be_v more_o free_a by_o reason_n of_o the_o great_a number_n of_o person_n which_o have_v embrace_v it_o and_o which_o have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o latin_a church_n if_o we_o credit_v historian_n king_n george_n pogebrack_n who_o in_o the_o year_n 1455._o succeed_v ladislaus_n son_n of_o albert_n become_v protector_n of_o the_o taborite_n that_o he_o embrace_v this_o party_n and_o afterward_o draw_v upon_o himself_o the_o excommunication_n of_o two_o pope_n pius_n the_o second_o and_o paul_n the_o second_o i_o will_v not_o here_o insist_v upon_o the_o commendation_n which_o some_o of_o these_o historian_n give_v he_o for_o his_o virtue_n justice_n prudence_n and_o integrity_n neither_o do_v i_o intend_v to_o examine_v the_o difference_n which_o he_o have_v with_o these_o two_o pope_n against_o who_o anathema_n he_o defend_v himself_o as_o well_o as_o against_o the_o enemy_n which_o he_o have_v engage_v against_o he_o unto_o his_o death_n which_o happen_v in_o the_o year_n 1471._o i_o shall_v content_v myself_o to_o observe_v that_o the_o historian_n which_o represent_v he_o unto_o we_o as_o a_o taborite_n and_o protector_n of_o the_o taborite_n be_v gross_o mistake_v which_o may_v warn_v we_o not_o too_o easy_o to_o give_v credit_n unto_o all_o that_o they_o report_v in_o fine_a we_o have_v a_o letter_n of_o this_o prince_n unto_o mathias_n king_n of_o hungary_n his_o son_n in_o law_n date_v in_o the_o year_n 1468._o which_o dom_n luke_n d'achery_n a_o benedictine_n friar_n have_v late_o publish_v the_o read_v whereof_o inform_v we_o several_a thing_n in_o the_o first_o place_n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o taborite_n and_o waldensis_n of_o bohemia_n if_o it_o be_v so_o that_o there_o be_v any_o of_o the_o ancient_a waldensis_n still_o remain_v 415._o tom_n 4._o spicil_n p._n 415._o be_v such_o as_o we_o have_v represent_v it_o must_v be_v grant_v say_v he_o if_o we_o will_v say_v thing_n that_o be_v more_o true_a than_o apparent_a that_o several_a error_n have_v flourish_v in_o this_o kingdom_n touch_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o eucharist_n circa_n remanentem_fw-la panis_fw-la sacramentalis_fw-la sic_fw-la enim_fw-la illi_fw-la nuncupabant_fw-la upon_o their_o teach_n that_o the_o bread_n of_o the_o sacrament_n remain_v and_o that_o it_o be_v convert_v into_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o communicant_a in_o the_o second_o place_n that_o this_o prince_n be_v not_o a_o taborite_n but_o a_o calixtin_n because_o he_o desire_v to_o communicate_v under_o both_o kind_n as_o he_o have_v always_o do_v after_o the_o example_n of_o his_o father_n his_o mother_n and_o his_o grandmother_n but_o that_o in_o all_o other_o point_n he_o be_v agree_v with_o the_o latin_a church_n three_o it_o may_v be_v gather_v from_o this_o letter_n that_o the_o taborite_n who_o doctrine_n he_o style_v to_o be_v erroneous_a be_v not_o kind_o use_v by_o this_o king_n 415._o ibid._n p._n 415._o therefore_o in_o the_o apology_n which_o they_o make_v in_o the_o year_n 1508._o under_o the_o name_n of_o waldensis_n against_o the_o doctor_n augustin_n they_o complain_v that_o some_o of_o their_o brethren_n suffer_v great_a misery_n under_o king_n george_n pogebrack_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o opinion_n touch_v the_o article_n of_o the_o sacrament_n unto_o george_n pogebrack_n succeed_v ladislaus_n son_n of_o casimir_n king_n of_o poland_n who_o the_o bohemian_o say_v ritius_fw-la choose_v for_o their_o king_n 2._o de_fw-fr regno_fw-la hunger_n l._n 2._o upon_o condition_n that_o he_o will_v suffer_v the_o hussites_n he_o make_v they_o all_o one_o with_o the_o taborite_n to_o enjoy_v their_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n which_o he_o do_v until_o the_o latter_a end_n of_o this_o xv._o century_n but_o at_o length_n the_o malicious_a accusation_n of_o their_o enemy_n have_v prevail_v over_o the_o spirit_n of_o ladislaus_n 32._o in_o fasciculo_fw-la rerum_fw-la expeten_v fol._n 81._o dubrav_fw-mi hist_o bohem._n l._n 32._o as_o appear_v by_o the_o first_o letter_n they_o write_v unto_o this_o prince_n to_o inform_v he_o that_o it_o be_v nothing_o but_o false_a calumny_n whereby_o they_o endeavour_v to_o misrepresent_v they_o unto_o he_o they_o be_v forbid_v all_o sort_n of_o assembly_n both_o public_a and_o private_a they_o be_v command_v to_o shut_v up_o the_o place_n where_o they_o be_v wont_a to_o make_v their_o assembly_n not_o to_o preach_v nor_o teach_v their_o doctrine_n any_o more_o neither_o by_o word_n nor_o by_o write_v and_o in_o a_o certain_a time_n to_o conform_v themselves_o either_o unto_o the_o calixtin_n or_o unto_o the_o roman_a church_n this_o edict_n occasion_v two_o letter_n which_o they_o write_v unto_o lagislaus_n with_o all_o the_o humility_n and_o respect_n as_o be_v due_a unto_o the_o majesty_n of_o their_o prince_n and_o sovereign_a wherein_o they_o complain_v of_o so_o great_a severity_n and_o of_o condemn_v they_o before_o they_o be_v hear_v and_o the_o more_o to_o excite_v he_o to_o have_v compassion_n on_o they_o they_o join_v their_o confession_n of_o faith_n unto_o each_o of_o these_o letter_n declare_v what_o be_v their_o belief_n of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o first_o write_v anno_fw-la 1504_o they_o say_v that_o they_o believe_v that_o the_o bread_n which_o jesus_n christ_n take_v which_o he_o bless_a break_v and_o the_o which_o he_o say_v be_v his_o body_n that_o it_o be_v his_o body_n which_o they_o explain_v more_o particular_o in_o the_o second_o which_o they_o write_v the_o year_n follow_v we_o believe_v and_o confess_v that_o the_o bread_n be_v the_o natural_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o wine_n his_o natural_a blood_n sacramental_o and_o because_o the_o doctor_n augustin_n charge_v they_o with_o have_v confess_v transubstantiation_n in_o their_o write_n they_o do_v protest_v that_o they_o do_v not_o write_v so_o nominato_fw-la contr._n binas_fw-la litter_n doctor_n augustin_n ann_n 1508._o in_o fasciculo_fw-la supra_fw-la nominato_fw-la for_o say_v they_o this_o confession_n have_v no_o foundation_n in_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n which_o say_v nothing_o of_o the_o real_a presence_n neither_o under_o these_o species_n nor_o in_o this_o nor_o of_o this_o nor_o with_o this_o beside_o they_o reject_v the_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o there_o also_o they_o declare_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v no_o long_o personal_o upon_o earth_n and_o that_o they_o expect_v he_o not_o until_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n give_v no_o credit_n unto_o those_o which_o show_v his_o person_n here_o below_o and_o a_o little_a after_o they_o declare_v that_o jesus_n christ_n promise_v his_o disciple_n to_o be_v with_o they_o spiritual_o by_o the_o participation_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n and_o in_o the_o sacrament_n in_o virtue_n with_o the_o testimony_n of_o his_o holiness_n whereupon_o they_o allege_v the_o word_n of_o st._n austin_n donec_fw-la seculum_fw-la finiatur_fw-la sursum_fw-la est_fw-la dominus_fw-la sed_fw-la tamen_fw-la hic_fw-la etiam_fw-la nobiscum_fw-la est_fw-la veritas_fw-la dominus_fw-la corpus_fw-la enim_fw-la in_o quo_fw-la resurrexit_fw-la in_o uno_fw-la loco_fw-la esse_fw-la oportet_fw-la and_o there_o also_o they_o deny_v that_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v in_o several_a place_n at_o once_o 8._o in_o prologom_n de_fw-fr vald._n c._n 8._o it_o will_v be_v difficult_a and_o even_o impossible_a to_o declare_v what_o be_v the_o effect_n of_o these_o apology_n see_v the_o historian_n be_v therein_o silent_a only_o the_o jesuit_n gretzer_n make_v this_o observation_n the_o waldensis_n preserve_v themselves_o a_o long_a time_n in_o bohemia_n bibliothec_n gesner_n in_o bibliothec_n and_o to_o this_o day_n they_o can_v be_v quite_o root_v out_o it_o be_v about_o the_o same_o time_n that_o one_o paulus_n scriptoris_fw-la professor_n in_o divinityin_n the_o university_n of_o tubinge_v be_v banish_v for_o have_v in_o his_o lecture_n speak_v against_o the_o common_a belief_n of_o the_o eucharist_n but_o this_o be_v not_o all_o yet_o for_o the_o waldensis_n of_o provens_n and_o piedmont_n present_v themselves_o and_o oblige_v we_o to_o speak_v of_o they_o as_o the_o persecution_n be_v violent_a in_o france_n against_o those_o people_n in_o the_o xii_o and_o xiii_o century_n and_o particular_o in_o the_o latter_a wherein_o the_o pope_n publish_v several_a croysado_n against_o they_o they_o be_v in_o fine_a constrain_v to_o disperse_v themselves_o and_o in_o this_o dispersion_n considerable_a number_n of_o they_o retire_v themselves_o into_o proven_n and_o towards_o labrier_n and_o merindol_n where_o they_o preserve_v themselves_o until_o the_o reign_n of_o lewis_n the_o twelve_o at_o which_o time_n they_o be_v persecute_v by_o the_o friar_n and_o inquisitor_n who_o break_v in_o violent_o upon_o they_o by_o force_n and_o arm_n say_v that_o they_o shall_v be_v
century_n hearty_o desire_v praefat_fw-la lib._n 3._o de_fw-fr divin_fw-fr office_n in_o praefat_fw-la it_o will_v suffice_v say_v he_o without_o singer_n without_o reader_n and_o without_o all_o the_o other_o thing_n practise_v in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n that_o the_o bishop_n or_o priest_n shall_v pronounce_v the_o blessing_n to_o consecrate_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n to_o the_o end_n the_o people_n shall_v be_v nourish_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o their_o soul_n as_o the_o apostle_n do_v at_o the_o first_o beginning_n of_o christianity_n by_o which_o word_n he_o show_v that_o he_o find_v the_o celebration_n of_o this_o mystery_n too_o much_o clog_v with_o ceremony_n as_o also_o st._n austin_n find_v that_o all_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v 500_o year_n before_o amalarius_n for_o he_o complain_v that_o religion_n be_v burden_v with_o heavy_a yoke_n 19_o ep._n 119._o c._n 19_o so_o that_o the_o state_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v more_o supportable_a but_o now_o it_o be_v time_n to_o consider_v the_o preparation_n of_o the_o communicant_a have_v examine_v those_o of_o he_o which_o celebrate_v chap._n ii_o of_o the_o disposition_n necessary_a for_o the_o communion_n and_o first_o of_o the_o inclination_n of_o the_o devout_a soul_n in_o regard_n of_o god_n and_o of_o jesus_n christ_n when_o our_o bless_a saviour_n do_v distribute_v the_o bread_n and_o wine_n of_o his_o eucharist_n to_o his_o apostle_n he_o say_v unto_o they_o do_v this_o in_o remembrance_n of_o i_o which_o his_o apostle_n do_v extend_v to_o the_o commemoration_n of_o his_o death_n and_o of_o his_o suffering_n a_o remembrance_n which_o draw_v after_o it_o all_o the_o good_a and_o holy_a disposition_n which_o the_o communicant_a shall_v have_v towards_o god_n and_o jesus_n christ_n and_o these_o inclination_n proceed_v from_o several_a idea_n which_o this_o save_a remembrance_n do_v stir_v up_o in_o our_o soul_n at_o the_o time_n in_o which_o we_o do_v prepare_v ourselves_o for_o the_o participation_n of_o this_o adorable_a mystery_n of_o our_o salvation_n for_o although_o the_o sacrament_n be_v institute_v principal_o for_o remember_v the_o death_n of_o our_o saviour_n nevertheless_o because_o his_o death_n be_v inseparable_a from_o his_o incarnation_n resurrection_n and_o ascension_n so_o it_o be_v that_o we_o approach_v unto_o the_o holy_a communion_n after_o have_v meditate_a on_o all_o these_o great_a and_o sublime_a mystery_n every_o one_o of_o which_o produce_v in_o our_o soul_n disposition_n somewhat_o different_a as_o have_v divers_a object_n and_o several_a encouragement_n the_o which_o nevertheless_o be_v all_o heavenly_a and_o all_o divine_a and_o all_o which_o do_v tend_v unto_o one_o mark_n and_o unto_o one_o end_n which_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o the_o eternal_a salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n and_o to_o say_v the_o truth_n this_o sacrament_n can_v represent_v unto_o our_o eye_n all_o these_o great_a and_o wonderful_a object_n but_o that_o it_o open_v unto_o we_o at_o the_o same_o time_n a_o wide_a field_n for_o our_o meditation_n to_o enlarge_v upon_o from_o the_o incarnation_n of_o the_o eternal_a word_n even_o unto_o his_o second_o come_v to_o judgement_n and_o we_o can_v finish_v this_o glorious_a course_n without_o have_v all_o the_o disposition_n which_o god_n require_v and_o all_o the_o preparation_n which_o he_o desire_v of_o we_o this_o will_v plain_o appear_v if_o we_o do_v several_o reflect_v upon_o all_o the_o idea_n which_o the_o remembrance_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o of_o his_o suffering_n do_v present_a unto_o our_o soul_n and_o what_o the_o father_n have_v say_v upon_o each_o of_o they_o and_o if_o we_o also_o feel_v the_o divine_a motion_n which_o will_v necessary_o flow_v from_o the_o christian_a soul_n for_o example_n the_o holy_a father_n have_v consider_v the_o eucharist_n as_o a_o memorial_n a_o symbol_n a_o image_n and_o a_o sacrament_n of_o the_o incarnation_n or_o as_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n speak_v of_o the_o oeconomy_n of_o jesus_n christ_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o that_o free_a and_o merciful_a dispensation_n which_o incline_v he_o to_o take_v our_o nature_n in_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n mary_n by_o the_o miraculous_a operation_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v what_o st._n justin_n martyr_n will_v say_v when_o he_o observe_v 296._o contr._n try_n phon_n p._n 296._o that_o the_o lord_n command_v we_o to_o make_v the_o bread_n of_o the_o eucharist_n in_o remembrance_n in_o that_o he_o be_v make_v man_n for_o those_o which_o shall_v believe_v in_o he_o it_o be_v also_o the_o thought_n of_o eusebius_n genesi_fw-la demonstr_n l._n 8._o a_o genesi_fw-la that_o jesus_n christ_n give_v unto_o his_o apostle_n the_o symbol_n of_o his_o divine_a oeconomy_n command_v they_o to_o make_v the_o image_n of_o his_o true_a body_n and_o it_o can_v be_v any_o way_n doubt_v but_o it_o be_v on_o this_o same_o consideration_n that_o pope_n gelasius_n say_v nature_n de_fw-fr duabus_fw-la in_o christo_fw-la nature_n that_o we_o do_v celebrate_v in_o the_o action_n of_o the_o mystery_n the_o image_n and_o resemblance_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o that_o we_o must_v believe_v of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n that_o itself_o which_o we_o profess_v in_o his_o image_n which_o we_o there_o celebrate_v and_o there_o receive_v that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o we_o shall_v be_v persuade_v of_o the_o truth_n of_o his_o flesh_n and_o blood_n the_o symbol_n and_o sacrament_n whereof_o we_o do_v receive_v at_o the_o holy_a table_n it_o be_v just_o what_o st._n leo_n intend_v to_o express_v by_o these_o word_n which_o be_v address_v unto_o the_o eutychian_o you_o shall_v communicate_v at_o the_o holy_a table_n in_o such_o a_o manner_n 86._o serm._n 6._o the_o jejun_n 7._o mensis_fw-la pag._n 86._o that_o you_o may_v not_o in_o the_o least_o doubt_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o jesus_n christ_n it_o be_v whereunto_o also_o attend_v all_o the_o passage_n of_o the_o father_n which_o prove_v either_o against_o the_o eutychian_o or_o against_o the_o docete_n and_o the_o putatifs_fw-fr the_o truth_n of_o the_o flesh_n of_o jesus_n christ_n by_o the_o eucharist_n as_o the_o existence_n of_o a_o thing_n be_v prove_v by_o the_o image_n and_o by_o the_o figure_n which_o represent_v it_o 84._o dialog_n 2._o p._n 84._o because_o according_a to_o theoderet_n say_v there_o must_v be_v a_o arch-type_n of_o the_o image_n because_o the_o painer_n which_o imitate_v nature_n do_v represent_v the_o image_n of_o thing_n which_o be_v see_v from_o whence_o he_o draw_v this_o conclusion_n if_o the_o divine_a mystery_n be_v the_o figure_n of_o a_o true_a body_n than_o the_o body_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v now_o also_o a_o true_a body_n not_o change_v into_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o divinity_n but_o fill_v with_o the_o divine_a glory_n a_o reason_v for_o the_o most_o part_n like_o unto_o that_o of_o tertullian_n against_o marcian_n for_o have_v expound_v these_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n by_o these_o other_o that_o be_v to_o say_v 40._o lib._n 4._o advers._fw-la martion_n c._n 40._o the_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n he_o add_v that_o it_o will_v not_o have_v be_v a_o figure_n if_o there_o have_v not_o be_v the_o truth_n of_o a_o body_n or_o a_o true_a body_n and_o indeed_o this_o idea_n of_o the_o incarnation_n of_o our_o lord_n be_v in_o such_o a_o manner_n imprint_v in_o the_o mind_n of_o communicant_n that_o the_o last_o prayer_n of_o st._n basil_n liturgy_n begin_v thus_o o_o jesus_n christ_n our_o god_n graeco-lat_n bibl._n patr._n t._n 2._o graeco-lat_n we_o have_v accomplish_v and_o finish_v according_a to_o our_o power_n the_o sacrament_n of_o thy_o oeconomy_n and_o dispensation_n this_o meditation_n which_o represent_v unto_o we_o the_o horror_n of_o sin_n the_o sad_a condition_n we_o be_v in_o the_o fearful_a gulf_n wherein_o we_o have_v precipitate_v ourselves_o the_o love_n of_o the_o father_n the_o tender_a charity_n of_o the_o son_n the_o admirable_a work_n of_o our_o redemption_n the_o great_a mystery_n of_o godliness_n god_n manifest_a in_o the_o flesh_n fill_v we_o full_a of_o gratitude_n unto_o god_n and_o if_o unto_o the_o idea_n of_o his_o conception_n and_o birth_n we_o join_v that_o of_o his_o life_n therein_o to_o contemplate_v the_o purity_n of_o his_o innocence_n the_o glory_n of_o his_o miracle_n the_o splendour_n of_o his_o virtue_n the_o efficacy_n of_o his_o doctrine_n and_o the_o shame_n of_o his_o suffering_n we_o shall_v therein_o find_v so_o great_a joy_n so_o great_a comfort_n and_o so_o great_a pleasure_n in_o the_o contemplation_n of_o this_o divine_a scene_n that_o we_o shall_v be_v insensible_o transform_v into_o the_o same_o image_n from_o glory_n unto_o glory_n to_o speak_v with_o st._n paul_n that_o be_v to_o say_v
whence_o they_o conclude_v that_o see_v the_o bread_n of_o the_o sacrament_n be_v not_o by_o honorius_n his_o say_n the_o natural_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n but_o as_o it_o be_v his_o mystical_a body_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o church_n for_o he_o make_v no_o difference_n betwixt_o they_o it_o can_v be_v it_o proper_o and_o by_o a_o idendity_n of_o substance_n as_o it_o be_v speak_v but_o only_o in_o mystery_n and_o in_o sacrament_n if_o there_o be_v only_a occasion_n to_o show_v who_o they_o be_v that_o admit_v not_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n we_o may_v here_o instance_n in_o robert_n de_fw-fr duitz_n never_a cologne_n because_o it_o be_v certain_a by_o the_o confession_n of_o both_o side_n that_o he_o believe_v it_o not_o but_o because_o we_o also_o search_v the_o testimony_n of_o those_o which_o follow_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o adversary_n of_o paschas_fw-la which_o be_v that_o of_o berengarius_fw-la of_o which_o number_n we_o can_v affirm_v that_o robert_n be_v we_o will_v leave_v he_o as_o a_o man_n that_o be_v neither_o a_o follower_n of_o paschas_fw-la nor_o of_o his_o adversary_n but_o a_o disciple_n of_o john_n damascen_n and_o of_o remy_n of_o auxerr_n teach_v as_o they_o do_v the_o assumption_n of_o the_o bread_n by_o the_o divinity_n to_o make_v by_o this_o union_n with_o the_o divinity_n one_o sole_a body_n with_o the_o body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n it_o be_v not_o the_o same_o with_o a_o certain_a abbot_n call_v francus_n of_o who_o the_o centuriator_n of_o magdebourg_n observe_v 5._o centur._n 12._o c._n 5._o that_o he_o have_v no_o sound_a thought_n touch_v the_o communion_n affirm_v that_o the_o real_a body_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v not_o in_o the_o sacrament_n one_o will_v fain_o know_v who_o this_o abbot_n be_v of_o who_o the_o centuriator_n say_v nothing_o else_o and_o to_o say_v truth_n it_o be_v very_o hard_a precise_o to_o determine_v it_o but_o because_o positive_a proof_n be_v want_v conjecture_n that_o have_v likelihood_n and_o probability_n may_v the_o better_o be_v admit_v therefore_o i_o will_v not_o fear_v speak_v what_o i_o think_v of_o he_o i_o conceive_v then_o that_o it_o be_v franco_n abbot_n of_o lobbes_n in_o the_o country_n of_o liege_n there_o be_v two_o of_o this_o name_n in_o that_o monastery_n one_o of_o which_o live_v in_o the_o time_n of_o lewis_n the_o son_n of_o charles_n the_o bald_a and_o he_o be_v reckon_v the_o twelve_o abbot_n but_o it_o can_v be_v he_o we_o seek_v for_o because_o the_o centuriator_n place_v he_o towards_o the_o middle_n of_o the_o xii_o century_n therefore_o we_o must_v rather_o insist_v upon_o the_o other_o who_o succeed_v unto_o lambert_n about_o the_o year_n 1153._o which_o be_v just_a the_o time_n design_v by_o the_o centuriator_n for_o lambert_n succeed_v unto_o leonius_n anno_fw-la 1140._o and_o govern_v the_o monastery_n thirteen_o year_n 633._o de_fw-fr gestis_fw-la abbatum_fw-la lob._n t._n 6._o spicil_n p._n 621_o 622_o 628_o 629_o 630_o 631_o &_o 633._o so_o that_o our_o franco_n or_o francus_n be_v choose_v in_o his_o place_n anno_fw-la 1153._o or_o 1154._o he_o be_v head_n of_o the_o monastery_n eleven_o year_n and_o i_o the_o rather_o be_o induce_v to_o believe_v that_o the_o centuriator_n speak_v of_o this_o franco_n abbot_n of_o lobbes_n because_o that_o he_o speak_v nothing_o of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o what_o two_o of_o his_o predecessor_n folcuin_n and_o hertiger_n have_v teach_v before_o in_o the_o x._o century_n as_o we_o have_v declare_v in_o write_v what_o pass_v in_o that_o age_n upon_o the_o subject_a of_o the_o sacrament_n in_o the_o time_n that_o franco_n be_v abbot_n of_o lobbes_n gautier_n of_o mauritania_n be_v prebend_n of_o anthona_n and_o he_o be_v choose_v to_o go_v to_o rome_n to_o defend_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o prebend_n of_o anthona_n against_o the_o abbot_n franco_n for_o a_o prebendary_a which_o the_o friar_n of_o lobbe_n lay_v claim_n unto_o as_o have_v be_v time_n out_o of_o mind_n in_o the_o disposal_n of_o their_o abbot_n but_o so_o it_o be_v that_o this_o gautier_n be_v style_v in_o the_o continuation_n of_o the_o history_n of_o the_o abbot_n of_o lobbe_n 631._o ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la p._n 631._o the_o most_o eminent_a and_o chief_a of_o all_o the_o doctor_n of_o france_n also_o from_o prebend_n of_o anthona_n he_o become_v bishop_n of_o laon._n but_o that_o matter_n not_o see_v here_o how_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o presence_n of_o jesus_n christ_n whilst_o he_o be_v bishop_n in_o a_o letter_n which_o he_o write_v touch_v the_o mystery_n of_o the_o incarnation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n and_o wherein_o expound_v these_o word_n of_o the_o 3d._n of_o st._n john_n 464._o galterus_n episcopus_fw-la laudun_n ep._n 2._o t._n 2._o spicil_n p._n 464._o no_o man_n ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n but_o the_o son_n of_o man_n which_o come_v down_o from_o heaven_n he_o speak_v after_o this_o manner_n by_o the_o son_n of_o man_n we_o be_v here_o to_o understand_v the_o word_n make_v flesh_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o be_v omnipresent_v and_o not_o the_o body_n and_o soul_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o humane_a nature_n which_o he_o have_v take_v and_o which_o be_v not_o yet_o ascend_v into_o heaven_n for_o the_o flesh_n which_o he_o have_v assume_v be_v not_o present_a in_o all_o place_n but_o in_o shift_a place_n it_o go_v from_o one_o place_n unto_o another_o which_o our_o saviour_n show_v in_o say_v unto_o his_o apostle_n i_o be_o glad_a for_o your_o sake_n that_o i_o be_v not_o there_o the_o angel_n declare_v the_o same_o unto_o the_o woman_n say_v you_o seek_v jesus_n who_o be_v crucify_v he_o be_v rise_v he_o be_v not_o here_o from_o thence_o it_o be_v say_v he_o that_o st._n gregory_n say_v he_o be_v not_o here_o by_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o body_n which_o nevertheless_o be_v never_o absent_a in_o regard_n of_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o majesty_n and_o elsewhere_o 468._o id._n ibid._n ep._n 2._o p._n 468._o the_o son_n of_o god_n say_v he_o be_v on_o earth_n by_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o divinity_n although_o he_o be_v in_o heaven_n at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o father_n by_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o body_n and_o of_o his_o divinity_n which_o he_o himself_o declare_v be_v ready_a to_o ascend_v up_o into_o heaven_n in_o the_o presence_n of_o his_o disciple_n say_v i_o be_o with_o you_o unto_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n which_o word_v st._n gregory_n thus_o expound_v the_o word_n make_v flesh_n remain_v and_o he_o depart_v he_o go_v in_o regard_n of_o his_o body_n but_o he_o remain_v in_o regard_n of_o his_o divinity_n and_o in_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o epistle_n he_o prove_v by_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o of_o the_o father_n the_o omnipresence_n of_o the_o divinity_n of_o jesus_n christ_n in_o opposition_n unto_o his_o humanity_n which_o he_o have_v so_o represent_v unto_o we_o to_o be_v in_o one_o place_n that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v at_o the_o same_o time_n in_o another_o we_o may_v add_v unto_o these_o witness_n that_o which_o father_n chifflet_n give_v we_o in_o the_o preface_n which_o he_o have_v make_v unto_o the_o confession_n of_o faith_n which_o he_o attribute_n unto_o alcuin_n tutor_n unto_o charlemagne_n where_o dispute_v against_o the_o disciple_n of_o st._n austin_n follower_n of_o jansenius_n he_o say_v that_o he_o may_v apply_v unto_o they_o what_o hugh_n metellus_n prebend_n of_o thoul_n have_v say_v above_o five_o hundred_o year_n ago_o unto_o gerland_n sacramentarian_n of_o the_o sect_n of_o berengarius_fw-la you_o rely_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o st._n austin_n alcuin_n chiffict_a jesuita_n in_o praefar_v ad_fw-la confess_v alcuin_n do_v not_o put_v your_o dependence_n upon_o they_o he_o be_v not_o of_o the_o same_o opinion_n you_o be_v of_o you_o be_v much_o mistake_v you_o assure_v we_o with_o st._n austin_n that_o the_o word_n of_o jesus_n christ_n unto_o his_o disciple_n be_v figurative_a for_o they_o declare_v one_o thing_n literal_o and_o they_o signify_v another_o thing_n you_o affirm_v what_o he_o affirm_v but_o you_o do_v not_o believe_v what_o he_o believe_v it_o may_v then_o be_v conclude_v from_o what_o have_v be_v say_v and_o particular_o from_o the_o word_n of_o this_o prebend_n of_o thoul_n that_o at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o xii_o century_n those_o which_o be_v call_v berengarian_n maintain_v a_o doctrine_n contrary_n unto_o that_o which_o be_v establish_v by_o the_o decision_n of_o council_n which_o several_a pope_n cause_v to_o be_v assemble_v against_o berengarius_fw-la in_o the_o xi_o century_n but_o all_o these_o testimony_n be_v nothing_o in_o comparison_n of_o what_o happen_v in_o the_o person_n of_o those_o call_v albigensis_n who_o refuse_v to_o submit_v and_o acquiess_v unto_o the_o